Книга: Gryphon in Glory



Norton, Andre - High Hallock Cycle - 07 - Gryphon in Glory (v1.0) (html)Scanned

by Highroller.

Proofed more or less by Highroller.

Made prettier by use of EBook Design Group Stylesheet.

Gryphon in Glory by Andre Norton

Joisan

ABOUT ME THERE WAS ONLY THE GRAY LIGHT OF PREDAWN, WHICH left the ridges black

and harsh against the sky. Like all who deal secretly, I used this cover of shadows as I prepared to ride forth. Though I believed I was well armed in spirit for what I must do, still I shivered under my mail and leather as if I needed the cloak now rolled behind my saddle.

"Lady Joisan—"

That voice out of the dark, deep-set Abbey gate gave me a start. I swung around,

my hand going without bid of conscious thought to the hilt of the sword swinging

heavy at my belt.

"Lady…"

It was Nalda, who had been my right hand, and sometimes the left also, when the

invaders drove us out of Ithdale and we wandered guideless westward across unknown lands. Last night I had given her, not my orders, but my confidence.

She had listened as I pointed out that those who were left of our people were now safe in Norsdale, that they would continue to be given shelter and work by

the Dames, even as were the other refugees who had come this far, there being no

near fear to trouble their future.

"But you," she said, shrewdly seizing upon what must have colored my voice,

"you

speak as if you will not be here."

"I will not—for a space. None of us can know what lies ahead from one day's dawning to the next. I have been your lady, and, in a manner, also your lord, during our wanderings. Now I must consider my own affairs."

"My lady, do you go to seek him, then—my Lord Amber?"

"Not Amber!" My answer had been sharp. That was the name we had given him when

he first found us and we had thought him one of the Old Ones aiding us because

of some whim. "You know that he is my wedded lord—Kerovan. Yes, I must go to him—or at least seek him. I must. Nalda."

I had hesitated then, shy of revealing my feelings to anyone, even to Nalda, true of heart though she had always been. But she had nodded. "When my lord rode

forth these five days past—I knew you would follow, my lady. There is the bond

between you, which cannot be denied. Nor are you one to abide behind safe walls

to wait there in patience for tidings. You must be a-doing—even as you were in

Ithdale when we strove to defend it." Her voice faltered. I knew that she remembered what ties of her own had been broken on that raw, red day when we had

run from death, our escape so hard bought.

I had become brusque, for memory is sometimes a burden one must throw away lest

it weigh too heavily, the past against what must be done in the present.

"To you I would give my keys, if those still hung from my girdle. I set you in

charge of my people, knowing that you will see to their good—"

She had interrupted me quickly. "Lady, you have kin here. I am not of the keep

household nor kin to the House. What will my Lady Islaugha say to this? She has

recovered and no longer wanders in her wits—and she is a proud woman—"

"She may be my aunt but she is not of Ithdale," I had pointed out decisively.

"This is our own matter, none of hers. I have told the Lady Abbess that you are

to be my deputy. No"—I shook my head at the open question on her broad, sun-browned face—"the Abbess does not know my intentions. I have only said that

this shall be so should accident or illness strike at me. Your authority will stand."

There was only one under that roof besides Nalda who knew what lay in my head or

heart—and it was by her contrivance (that of the much revered Past-Abbess Malwinna) that I rode forth wearing unfamiliar steel and leather, mounted on a

tough mountain mare, in the dim light of morning. Or would ride when I had done

with Nalda.

She came closer, her voice a husky whisper. It would seem that she, no more than

I, wanted to arouse any notice. Now her hand, pale in this dim light, raised as

if to catch at the reins I had gathered up when I swung into the saddle.

"Lady, you must not go alone!" she said urgently. "I have been burdened with worry since you told me of what you would do. Outside this dale the country may

be a trap—danger crawls there. "

"All the more reason that I ride alone, Nalda. One only, who goes with caution,

can slip between shadows." My hand rose to cup over that which hung about my neck—the globe of crystal with its imprisoned silver gryphon, my lord's own gift

to me, and one that was—was what? I did not truly know; this might be the time

for me to discover the power of that which I wore, carried, and had once used,

without understanding what it could or would do.

"I have seen things, Nalda. Yes, and been a part of them also, that would make

those raving Hounds of Alizon turn and run, their tails clapped between their legs, their jaws foaming with fear. I ride alone and when I return, then my lord

shall be with me—that, or I shall not come at all!"

She stood, her shoulder brushing against my saddlebag, looking up at me with searching intensity. Then she nodded briskly as I had seen her do many times on

the trail when we had come to the solution of some problem.

"So be it, my lady. Be sure when you come for an accounting all shall be as you

wish. May Our Lady of the Harvest Shrine guide your way—for she is ever mindful

of those who love true!"

I made my own farewell, but Nalda's invocation of Gunnora, the lady who is mindful of the pains and pleasures of womenkind, was a warm thing to carry.

In

my heart I blessed her for such an invocation—though she gave it in the very shadow of the House of the Flames, where Gunnora holds no rule or place.

Or was there one behind the walls who would also give me a blessing strange to

the learning of the Dames? As I headed out into the first thin light of day I thought of that other—the

Past-Abbess Malwinna, her ancient body so well tended by her "daughters," who perhaps did not even guess what her thoughts might be or where they might roam.

I had sought her out in misery, coming into her small walled garden, which was a

place of infinite peace, though there was no peace for me, nor could there be now. Within me battled feelings that were hot and high. I had thought her perhaps too old to understand what I felt. She was so near the Dames' idea of perfection—how could she find sympathy for me?

Then 'my eyes had met hers and I knew that there was full awareness there.

She

did not weigh me in that long moment we sat so, eyes linked to eyes, or rebuke

my savage impatience. All she took from me was that hampering self-pity, my sense of outrage, and so cleared my thoughts to positive ends.

"I will not let it end so!" I had cried out of my hurt and anger, which fed each

other into a mighty storm.

Still our gaze had locked. She gave me nothing—I was young, uncertain. I wanted

some one to say now, "Do this, or that, Joisan, and all will come right."

Except

there was no one left to so order my life. I stood alone.

That loneliness was the very core of what ate at me.

"I am his wife—not only by ceremony, but by my heart's wish!" I said that with

defiance. To speak of such emotions here might well be a sin. The Dames of Norstead put aside all the desires of the flesh when they take their vows.

"Two

ways I can claim him—still we are not one!"

She did not answer—my words tumbled on, growing shriller as I thought upon my loss.

"We stood against evil, and after that, I thought our true marriage must come.

He—I knew he was exhausted by the struggle, that he would turn to me soon—perhaps that he must learn a little to be himself after that ill fortune had passed.

"So I was patient." Now, remembering my words, my clasp on the reins tightened,

I stared ahead not seeing the road before me. "I tried to let him know by word

and act that in him I found all that any woman might desire. Marriage between House and House is not rooted in liking of maid for man, man for maid. We wed,

or are wed, for the advantage of our kin. But I believe, yes, I must believe that sometimes a richer life comes from such couplings. I thought it would be mine!

"You know the marks he bears," I had continued, "the sign of the Old Ones.

When

his enemies seized and would have used me for their foul purposes he alone came.

Then I understood that such marks meant nothing, he was not one to hold in awe,

but one to love.

"His hurts were mine, his way my road. I know this will be so as long as that Flame Eternal burns upon any altar. But—what I had to give him was not enough…"

So I had poured out my hurt, and my hands had been tight upon the englobed gryphon which was all he had left me, even as I held it now, left-handedly, for

comfort. The gryphon was the badge of my lord's house, but this talisman was far

older, a thing out of the Waste where the Old Ones had gone.

I looked down at it. Even in this half light its tiny gemmed eyes glittered, I

could almost believe that its half-furled wings had moved, that it longed to break free of the confinement of the crystal. It was a thing of Power, though neither my Lord or I knew how to use it. Also it was a Key—

I remember the words of that strange man who had come at the end of my lord's battle. Neevor, he had called himself. It was he who said that I held a key.

What I had was not enough! My pain caught at me, it had burned away pride.

Pride

of that kind I did not want. I shifted in the saddle, I was beyond the outermost

farm, soon I must turn into the southern way-path. Still I could not control my

backward-looking thoughts.

When I had made that same cry to the Past-Abbess she had answered me with what I

had not expected—agreement.

"No, what you have is not enough."

"Kerovan." She had said his name in her soft voice, as if she blessed him.

"He

has been ever made poor. His father—to him a son was needed for his own pride,

that one of his blood follow him in the great seat of his hall. Kerovan knew this with his heart before he could understand.

"Darkness feeds and grows stout on unhappiness, draws also thoughts which are misshapen and hurtful. We all have such thoughts—some held so secretly we do not

know with our full minds that they exist. Yet, in spite of such a fashioning, Kerovan was not wrought into what they term him—monster. Rather he is stronger

within than he believes.

"I have met your lord."

That startled me, for I knew that no man entered the inner part of the Abbey.

I

must have made some sound, for the Past-Abbess had smiled at me.

"Great age brings its own privileges, my child. Yes, when I heard your story I

wished to learn more of him. He came and—in spite of his inner wall against the

world—he talked. What he said was less, of course, than what he did not, but he

revealed more than he knew.

"He now stands in a place from which run many roads—he must choose and that choosing shall make of him, for good or ill, a different man. Child, we know so

little of the Old Ones. Though, in spite of prudence telling us to walk with care, we are drawn to the unknown—those wonders and perils beyond our understanding. Kerovan has their heritage; he is now like a child who faces a pile of glittering toys. But the caution born of his strange birthing makes him

ever suspicious. He fears giving way to anything that he senses will make him feel instead of think. Most of all he fears himself, thus he will not be drawn

to any he loves—"

"Loves?" I had been bitter then.

"Loves," she repeated firmly. "Though he knows it not, nor, even if he did, would he allow himself to be moved now. He feels safe within those walls of his—not only safe for himself, but for others. He will not come again to you, Joisan—though he does not admit this even to himself. He will not come because

he cares—because he fears that the strange blood in him shall, in some manner,

threaten you."

"But that is not true!" I had cried then. My hold upon the crystal gryphon became so tight that I might have crushed it.

"To him it is. Unless he can break his inner wall—"

"Or have another break it for him!"

She had nodded then. And again, when I had added, "I am not free, nor shall he

be! Let him ride south at Lord Imgry's bidding as he has done. They will try to

use him—even as they make wardsigns for evil behind his back. He shall find no

friends there. Oh, why did he go?"

"You know why, child."

"Yes! He thought he had nothing else, that he might as well spend his life thus.

So he tells his wife that she is free—and he goes! Well, I care! I have no false

pride. If Kerovan rides to the bidding of those who would make him a tool—then I

shall ride also!"

"You shall. For this is a meant thing, and, perhaps, of greater importance than

you can guess now. Go with the Will of the Flame. That shall be your cloak and

shelter, dear child. May It lighten your path and kindle joy in your heart at last."

So she had not only given me her full blessing, but, by her orders, the storehouse of the Abbey had been opened to me. There I had chosen weapons and gear from that brought by refugees, keeping my own council until all was readied. Then I held my meeting with Nalda and so had come to this lonely ride

into the unknown.

My mare, an ugly beast if compared to the larger horses of the plain, was mountain bred. I called her "Bural" which is a landsman's name for a tough root

it is hard to pull free. She turned now under my urging into the trail southward

that my lord and his escort had taken earlier.

I had little hope of catching up with him; there were too many days gone.

Also,

though this road must be my guide, I was wary of riding openly.

The land was now a roaming place for more than one kind of enemy. Before the war

the Waste, which lay not too far distant, had been a haunt for outlaws and masterless men, raiders. I also had heard that there were small bands of the enemy quartering the land to the eastward—though those had grown fewer of late.

Perhaps their scouts had found this trail, visited it to spy upon any traffic there.

Once this had been a merchants' path. The abbey dales were notably good for trade and several sponsored yearly fairs. However, there had been no attempt to

keep this road open since the invasion began and now it was overgrown; winter slides had cut away slices of the way where it climbed the ridges.

I was glad of the coming of better light, for several times I had to dismount and lead Bural over loose footing. Still I was not too delayed until the second

day of travel when a thick mist became a threat. It was so complete a cloaking

of the ground that I could see less than a sword's length before me. Moisture gathered on my helm, trickling down to wet my face, and my hands were clammy on

the reins as I led the mare on.

To continue so blindly was folly. I began to look for shelter. There were rocks

and heaps of stone in plenty, but nothing in the way of a cave or even a half-roofed crevice. I had no mind to squat on wet stones in the open while waiting for better weather.

Then, before us reared a sudden barrier of rock. Bural jerked at the reins, turned her head stubbornly to the left, though whether that was north, south, east, or west, I could not have said. We had left the road earlier, as it lay straight and open for a space and I had no mind to be seen.

Since the mare was so stubborn, and the footing seemed less loose in that direction, I allowed her her will. Thus we skirted along the wall so closely that now and then the saddlebag brushed the stone. I do not know when I first noticed that it was not just an escarpment of natural rock, but in truth a wall

made to some purpose.

The stones, though rough and very large, had been laid with such skill that I do

not believe I could have forced the point of my belt knife into the cracks.

Though on other rocks one could see the ash-green or rusty-red of lichen in growth, this wall was clear except for runnels of moisture condensed from the fog.

I was certain we had come upon another ruin of the Old Ones and I paused, holding out the gryphon as a test. The crystal was, as ever, warm, while the glittering eyes of the imprisoned beast were bright, but there came no real glow. Not all the remains scattered about the Dales were imbued with unknown Power. There were many no different from the new-made ruins of our own where war

had swept. I judged this to be one of the dead places where I had nothing to fear.

Bural plodded steadily on. There was no break in the wall. Then, suddenly, the

mountain mare snorted, her head came up higher as if she had scented something

through the mist. She hastened pace, pulling determinedly when I would have held

her back.

I drew the dart gun for which I had but little ammunition, took Bural's reins into my left hand. Swordplay I would trust to only as a last resort.

Now I smelled it also, hanging heavily entrapped in the mist, wood smoke! We could not be too far from a fire.

Before I could silence her, Bural uttered a loud whinny—and was answered!

There

was no holding her wiry strength, though my tight grasp on the reins brought her

head around. She bucked and kicked out. Our struggle carried us into an open space where the wall came to an abrupt end.

In the murk there was a ruddy glow which must mark a fire. I saw a shape, well-veiled by the mist, coining from it toward me. As I brought up the dart gun, Bural broke away and went trotting straight to the fog-muted flames.

I dared not be set afoot in the wilderness, so must get the mare back, though that fire, in this place, was likely tended by enemies rather than friends.

No

refugees would have willingly chosen these barren heights as their road.

The one coming toward me swung aside to let Bural pass, making no attempt to catch at her dangling reins. Tall—plainly a man. Now I could see he carried bared steel. I must hold my own fire until I had a better target, for he probably went mailed.

I had seen death and had been ready to kill. But then my actions had been in defense, for myself or the lives of others. To shoot coolly thus, I discovered,

was a difficult thing.

"Jervon!" A hollow call came from the ruddy blotch of flames behind the advancing man. He did not turn his head, but he stopped and stood, his sword still in his hand. All I could see of his face beneath the rim of his helm was a

whitish blur, for as he halted, so did I, still and waiting.

Another came out of the fog, near to the height of the man but more slender.

The

newcomer held out both hands, shoulder high, palm out, in the age old sign for

truce. Passing the man, that second stranger approached me confidently as if we

were kin meeting.

The mail this warrior wore had a strange bluish hue, as if fashioned of a different metal. I slowly lowered the dart thrower, yet did not slide it back into the loop on my belt. Now the mist ceased to mask all so completely and I was looking into a face browned by the sun, yet of delicately cut feature. I was

fronting not another man but a woman going armed like myself.

Her hands dropped, but not to draw a weapon, rather so her forefingers sketched

in the damp air a sign. I saw that symbol gleam sharp and clear for a space of

three or four breaths and then fade. It was blue—yet partly green—and I knew it

for a manifestation of Power.

An Old One?

I drew a deep breath, put the dart gun away, knowing well that no man-made weapon could be used against such. Also I knew that any of the Power that was without harm for my kind was of that pure color. Just as places of safety in the

Dales glowed the same shade by night.

She smiled, this woman of the Old Ones. Then she nodded as if the answer to some

riddle had become clear. Now she held out her right hand to me.

"Come." That was neither order nor invitation, but lay between. Her fingers closed on mine as I unconsciously reached out. They held fast as if she half-expected me to jerk away.

Her flesh was as damp and chill from the mist as mine, but no different, that I

could see, from humankind. I was sure she meant me no harm. Rather she looked on

me with a smile as if I were one she had been awaiting for a long time.

She drew me on to the fire, and I went willingly enough. As we passed the man,

he fell in on my other side, his sword now sheathed. He had a strong, comely face, though there were lines laid deep about his eyes and lips. Yet now he also

smiled in welcome, as if he were brother-kin.

I sensed almost from the beginning that there was a deep bond between these two.

They did not speak to each other or to me, but the three of us came companionably to a pocket where the fire had pushed back most of the mist.

Beyond the flames were two of the larger horses of the lower Dales, now rough of

coat, such as my uncle had once prized in his stables before he rode south to die. There was also a pack pony, by which Bural stood, stretching out her head

so that they might rub noses. All three of the horses had been stripped of gear,

which was piled, saddles and packs together, behind the fire. At the side of that were spits whittled from wood impaling the fat, dripping bodies of three hill hens. The scent of the roasting meat made my mouth water.

The woman laughed, pointing to the hens.

"See even Gunnora has prepared for your coming. There is plenty for all of us.

Sit, rest, and eat. But first—" She turned to her companion who, without a word,

fetched a small saddle cask, drew the stopper from it with his teeth, while in

his other hand he held a horn cup into which he then poured liquid from the cask.

The woman took the cup and pressed it into my hands, serving me in the manner that the lady of a Dale keep does an honored guest—the welcome cup to wash trail

dust from a wayfarer's throat before he announces himself and his business.

Old formal manners—I remembered to bow instead of curtsy, and the proper words

came to me without trying. "To the givers of the feast, thanks, fair thanks.

For

the welcome of the gate, gratitude. To the rulers of this house, fair fortune and bright sun on the morrow."

As I drank, the lady's nose wrinkled and she chuckled.

"For that last wish, we may all petition whatever Powers aid travelers here.

Unless"—she raised a long finger, as she had used it pen fashion in the air earlier, and nibbled at it—"unless all this has been the work of some Plan."

I saw her companion frown slightly, as if a memory he did not like touched him.

Studying them both in this better light I thought that he was just such a man as

one might find in any Dale force, though one of rank to seat at the high table.

Yet at the fore of his tarnished helm (for his armor had none of the brightness

of hers) there was no longer any house badge. I found his face frank, open, strong of mouth and jaw as a man's should be, with an air of confident purpose

about him.

The lady—I was sure she was not of Dale blood, which here in High Hallack, could

only mean strange kin. Old. Though she also wore a helm, a small wisp of hair (as if she had assumed that head covering hurriedly at my coming) lay loose on

her cheek. The color was very dark, also her features were thinner, sharper, and

her eyes very large. I had never seen her kind in any Dale holding.

While I drank the welcome cup, they both sat at ease, cross-legged, on either side of me. I wondered what to say beyond the courtesy of my name. They could well wonder why I wandered alone among the hills, but to entrust strangers with

the nature of my mission was folly.

Kerovan

IN A LAND SUCH AS OURS A MAN IS WARY OF DREAMS. WE OF THE Dales carry old fears,

not the least being that perhaps, when we dream, our innermost selves receive warnings, orders… Save that we carry into waking only broken shards, to be haunted by them. Can a man dream himself into madness? I have sometimes feared

so. For I was haunted… Yet with the coming of each morning I hoped again to wake

from the shadow which new deep dreams had laid upon me and which I never could

remember.

In a way I was captive—to whom or what I could not name.

When I last went into the Waste it was in search of Joisan to whom I owe duty.

Yes, I will have it so—duty only. She must not be more to me. No matter what boy's hopes I once held, I recognize that they are not for my kind—half man, half—what? At least I now have the courage to know myself for what I am and show

it. I need only look at my bootless feet, bare after all those years when I tried to conceal my otherness, to see the hooves upon which I walk…

I went then into the Waste, still, in part, Kerovan of Ulmsdale. What did I come

out as? I do not know. Perhaps I will never learn—maybe for my own good. Yet I

was driven by restless loneliness, sharp as any sword point against my flesh.

Joisan—no, I will not think of Joisan. I will harness my determination to keep

her out of my mind. I need only remember how they looked at me in Norsdale when

I brought her there— safe, still her own woman. Then I broke our wedding bonds,

I evoked wife-right for her, since she would not for herself.

That woman—the Past-Abbess… No, I will not think of her either. Their world is

not mine. In truth; I felt no tie with the Dales, even though Lord Imgry had summoned me again. Because nothing, any longer, has meaning for me, I have answered his order.

Yet the dreams come and I cannot tear them out of my aching head as a man tears

away the badge of a lord he no longer serves. I hate to sleep—unless it be to drop into darkness without another awakening.

My escort sit and talk around the fire well beyond me. Men, as I once was, or seemed to be. They avoid me and I know it is only Imgry's will that has kept them in my company.

Once I was fascinated by the Old One's secrets. I had gone exploring in the Waste with the Wiseman Riwal. Together we rode the Road of Exile. No—I am not going to remember!

Hair—like the polished leaves of autumn, her quick steps, her voice… Too strong

a memory, a hurting which will never heal. I will not remember! I am not the Kerovan that was…

To tramp about the camp at night is a way to keep awake. My body aches with fatigue. The men watch me from the corners of their eyes, whisper. I do not allow myself to think of them— or…

However, one cannot fight sleep forever. I dream again…

There was one of the Old Ones—Neevor—I remember his name. Who he was or what I

do not know. Once—twice—he has given me aid. A friend? No, those such as I have

no friends. When I am awake I try to think of Imgry and what he wants of me.

A

cold man, strong with a pride that feeds on accomplishment, on strength of will

and purpose.

We of the Dales (once I was of the Dales) have never given oaths to any one overlord. That was our great weakness when the invaders, having tested us with

their spies, struck our land. Each lord fought for himself to defend his own holdings, so was speedily overrun.

Painfully we learned our lesson. The sea coast by then lay in their hands, while

those among us who had the grace and largeness of spirit to attract others to serve under them were dead—either slain in fruitless battle, or by assassination. Only then we drew together under three of the southern lords who

were far-seeing and strong enough to make a kingdom of sorts out of a loose confederation of holdings.

Of these Imgry is the least liked. However, no man who has served with him can

deny that he has the iron will to gather support. A man does not have to be loved to be well served. He, most of all, drew together our broken forces, hammered them mercilessly into an army where old feuds were unallowable—an army

knowing only one enemy, the Hounds of Alizon.

Only that army was so battered and weary they could make no real stand. They raided, like the snarling outlaws of the Waste, fighting like wolves even as those canny beasts hold to pack-kin.

Still the invaders poured into the port they had taken. The only advantage we had was that they brought no more of those strange weapons from overseas which

had given us such blows—rolling over strongholds as a man steps upon a hill of

ants. Those, we were told by the few prisoners we took, were not of Alizon but a

new magic known to allies of our enemies.

The fact that these land-crawlers were broken, or helpless, for some reason we

did not understand, meant little for they still had men and weapons in plenty.

Though our smiths labored in the far western Dales, we could not make one dart

do the work of two, and we must at times raid for the very supplies we needed.

I had been one of the scouts seeking out such supplies. My childhood in the far

Dales, where I had been fostered with a hunter, gave me skills for such work.

I

had been content to serve so. for among my own kind I was suspect even before my

physical differences were known—monster—half-man—rumor had always played with me.

Imgry had sent me north months ago because my father ailed. Also, there was always the chance that the Hounds, nosing along the coast, might strike inland

there. I had visited Ulmsdale in secret, learning then that I had enemies of my

own blood, my closest blood. My mother had hated me from birth, not altogether

because of my misshapen body but because (as I learned) I failed to be the weapon she had sought, with her limited learning of ancient Power, to forge.

Too proud she had been of that learning; I was not her only failure. When she and her companions sought to summon the sea to blast Alizon's men, they instead

flooded the Dale itself and there remained no lordship for anyone. When I then

would have returned to my duty with the army, I discovered the enemy between me



and-the Dale forces. Striking westward I had found— my lady…

No, I would not think of her as that—even though, by all the laws of the Dale,

we were securely wed and had been since childhood, long before we ever saw each

other. Joisan…

I cannot master my thoughts any more than I can master my dreams. I see her with

her people, I see her with my cousin Rogear, who came to her under my name—she

believing me to be an Old One; I see her in the Waste, under Rogear's control,

being used by him and my mother as a tool because in her hands was that thing of

true Power which I had found and given to her—the ball with its imprisoned gryphon.

Yes, I cannot flee her in mind as I have in body. I see her always, proud, full

of courage, kind of heart, all things a man wishes for. A man—I was not a man,

yet still I want her.

Why does she linger so in my mind—I have released her? There are good men in plenty in the Dales to give her all she deserves. I am not to be numbered among

them.

I rode away more to free myself from her than because Imgry summoned me, let me

face the truth of that. And I am so tired—yet when I sleep I dream… Still I must

sleep—though there is a pride in me which will not let me show fatigue or weakness to those who ride with me. Yet at last I must give way…

The hall was so vast that its walls lay beyond my sight. Great pillars formed aisles along which drifted wisps of sweet-smelling mist, which coiled and wove

patterns in the air as if invisible hands played with their ribbon lengths.

There were no torches, no wall lamps, but there was light.

I moved between two lines of the pillars, seeing as I passed that runes were graven over their surfaces. These runes, also, held light of their own, some gray as early dawn, some faintly blue.

The nines bothered me. I should be able to read them—the messages they carried

were or had once been of vast import— perhaps the history of a people or a nation long since vanished.

For this place was very old—the feeling of age lay so strong that it was a weight to press upon any venturing here.

Age—and knowledge. Our own keeps had their record rooms. There is something in a

man which makes him wish to leave some remembrance of his life and deeds.

However, the records of my people were as meaningless scrawls made with a twig

in river sand compared to all this. Also it was a place of Power. Power that could be felt, tasted. Tilled this place throughout.

Still, I was awed, but not fear-ridden. All here seemed so far removed from the

being I was that I could not be touched by it. The being that I was…

I was Kerovan. I clutched tightly at that scrap of identity. Where I was I did

not know, but who I was—that I could not forget. My decision held defiance.

The pillars became only shadows I passed at a swift, steady pace. Though I heard

nothing audible I was aware of a kind of whispering inside my head—small bodiless things pushed and plucked at some protective covering over my thoughts,

striving to win an entrance.

Ahead was an intensifying of the light. The radiance, centered at that spot, began to change color, deepening to blue—then fading to a silver that was like a

fire for brilliance.

Though I had no sense of my feet pressing any pavement, I sped along as might a

runner intent upon his goal. There was a rising excitement in me as if I were indeed engaged in a race and that the end of it, for good or ill, lay just ahead.

That which was so alight was a dais, a point of which extended toward me. I guessed from what I could see that its full shape was that of a star. On that stood what might be an altar wrought of crystal—an altar—or a tomb—for a form rested within.

I reached the point of the star, there to sway dizzily for a moment—forward with

the impulse that had borne me here, back when I encountered resistance from the

air itself. Perhaps this formed a protection for the sleeper.

He was neither man nor bird; still a part of both species seemed fused in him.

Though, as I looked upon him, this unnatural coupling seemed natural and right.

His face was avian—provided with a bill-like extension, which was both nose and

mouth; wide, if now closed, bird eyes. On his head rose a crest of feathers, which extended, growing smaller, down to his shoulders, then along the upper parts of his arms. However, his feet were not birdlike—rather broad paws showing

the tips of mighty talons, which must have been withdrawn into sheaths. On the

contrary, however, his hands were a bird's claws, laced together about the hilt

of a sword, unsheathed, unblemished by time, the blade appearing not steel but a

rod of light.

All this and yet he was no monster. Rather the same awe that had filled me since

I came here intensified. There, surely, lay one who in his own time had been far

greater than any of those who call themselves "men."

Why I had been summoned to this place I did not know, for summoned I was sure I

had been. Those whispers in my head grew stronger, battered harder, with an almost frantic intensity as if they had but a little time in which to deliver some message and feared their mission was in vain.

Still I gazed upon the sleeper. More and more it seemed to me that there was something about him that was of the gryphon— that symbol of my House, which also

hung imprisoned in crystal in the ball that Joisan wore. He lacked the beast body, the wings—yet his avian face—crested head—paw feet—claw hands— yes there

was a likeness.

That thought opened the door for an instant to the whisperers, for they became

audible at last.

"Landisl, Landisl!"

I turned my head back and forth as one does to dislodge buzzing woodsflies, trying to escape that shrilling. Once before I had heard that name—for name it

was—but where and when?

Memory opened—I had called it when I had faced the black sorcery of my mother's

and Rogear's raving, though then it had been so alien that I had not understood.

"Landisl." My own lips shaped that once…

There followed a moment of dark, a twisting and wrenching, as if my body had been seized and jerked out of one life into another. I opened eyes upon light.

But it was not the brilliance of the star dais. I blinked and blinked again, stupidly, bemused… There was a fire, born of wood, real, of this world…

Standing over me was the chief of those sent by Imgry. Behind him the other men

stirred in the early morning light. I felt a surge of rage—I had been so close

to knowing—learning… This dolt had broken the dream—the first dream that had meant something, from which I might have learned!

I still found difficulty in seeing trees instead of pillars— fire… This time I

did not lose the details I dreamed. Rather I carried with me, as we got to horse

and rode on through the morning mists, a vivid memory of that other place.

In fact, I became more and more sure that that had been no ordinary dream.

Instead, part of me, which thought and could remember, had been drawn into another time—or world—where there still did lie the body of the gryphon-man, sleeping or dead. Landisl." I tried to shape that name waking and found that now

h was distorted, sounded so unlike, that I caught my tongue between my teeth.

Nor did I exchange any words with my companions. I did not even note when they

forged ahead, leaving a gap between us.

Finally I summoned resolution and shut the vision or dream back into memory.

I

had an odd feeling that if I allowed myself to dwell upon it too long, or too often, I might be lost somewhere, between the world in which I now moved and that other place.

I concentrated with determination on what lay about me—the morning's warmth of

sun, the track along which we rode, even the men of our company. My old scouting

instinct returned and I was as alert as if I moved on a foray.

Now I wanted to talk, though heretofore I had held aloof from the others, speaking only when spoken to, which was seldom. That the war in the south was in

stalemate I gathered from comments I had heard. Our own fighting had become a smattering of raids made by small squads of men. Imgry and his two fellow-leaders were busied about the foraging of weapons, the rebuilding or building of a closer knit army, under tight leadership.

The invaders, also, appeared less aggressive, willing to hold to what they had

seized, but making few attempts to enlarge that territory. Two of the men I traveled with had been talking eagerly of a Sulcar ship, which had made a landing to the far south and been met by a scouting party.

Those hardy merchant adventurers had brought news of a second war overseas, one

that hampered the plans of Alizon. The Sulcars, always fighters, had taken with

them an invitation to come coast raiding if they could, taking toll of the invaders'

captured seaports. Whether anything might come of this loosely discussed alliance no man knew, but the possibility was heartening.

However, we all knew that the Hounds must be defeated in the Dales, and that we

alone must face the struggle for freedom. That was dictated, not only by stiff

Dale pride, but the fact that we could claim no other allies—having always been

a lone people living much to ourselves.

Or were we alone? I looked to the west as that thought stirred in v my mind.

In

the beginning, generations ago, the Dalesmen had come up from the south. We are

a legend-loving people with our songsmiths ever ready to blow up a small encounter into an epic battle. Oddly enough, though, we had no tales of our race

that reached farther back than our coming into High Hallack. That our fathers then built well-fortified keeps here suggested they had left behind turmoil and

trouble.

What they had fled from we do not know. We are not nomads by nature. Each lord

kept his fort-keep snug, trained his sons to war as a matter of course. Yet we

had faced no threat, until the coming of Alizon, that was more than a brush with

outlaws, a kin feud between one Dale and the next.

Our people had come, however, into a haunted land. The Old Ones (and how many races and kingdoms there had been of them we shall never know) had already withdrawn. They left behind them numerous traces of their own, alien to humankind. There are places where no man dares venture, not only for his life's

sake, but also because of a threat to his spirit. Other places are known to welcome, bring peace and healing. Some of our blood sought out what small secrets they could uncover, but that lore was often baffling.

However, though the Old Ones had left coast and Dales for some compelling reason, we are all certain they had not altogether withdrawn from our world.

There was the Waste to the west, a vast buffer between us and even more unknown

land, full of signs of Power, potent places. We knew well that there was life there—besides the outlaws—perhaps left to spy upon us, perhaps utterly uncaring,

since their affairs and desires might be so far removed from those we understood.

There were fighters among the Old Ones—we have found traces of ancient and terrible wars. Metal seekers have brought out of the Waste masses so congealed

and melted that it proved such had been the targets of vast forces.

If the Dalesmen had first believed that they only lived in High Hallack on sufferance, long, undisturbed years had lulled us into thinking that we had nothing to fear from those others. Still— suppose that the invaders, who knew nothing of this land, the things that trod the Waste, were to overrun us?

Where

next would they strike? Would they be stopped by legends and shadows?

We were not even sure why those of Alizon were unleashed upon us, traveling overseas to expend such fury upon a country, which, by all accounts, was far less rich and useful than their own. I had heard one story that a high-ranking

prisoner, taken when one of their mighty earth-crawlers had broken down, reported that those who had lent them those alien weapons had said the secret of

vast power was to be found here—enough to make them masters of the world. So their ruler lusted for that.

The only place where such a Power could be found might be the Waste, or in a land that might lie beyond that. If that belief was what had brought the Hounds

upon us… Then—could those of the Waste be made to see that they had a part in our war?

No thinking man doubted that if Alizon invaded there they would come up against

potent forces. But could the wielders of those be persuaded now to lend aid to

the Dales?

I chewed upon that, finding it held a flavor I liked. To meddle with Power on our own, as my mother and Rogear had sought to do, was fatal folly. However, to

enlist on our side those who had tamed it was another thing. Had this lain somewhere in Lord Imgry's mind?

I sent my horse forward with a click of tongue, suddenly eager to reach the journey's end—as we did by nightfall.

My last meeting with the southern leader had been in a forester's hut, no trappings of state had backed that tall man with the cold greenish eyes. Now I

sat on a stool in a small keep's great hall.

Imgry occupied a high-backed chair which had been taken from the dining dais, yet still raising him above those who came to him. The man's authority was like

an unseen armor, though the latter in truth he did not wear at present, only the

plain leather of a lord home from a day's hunting. The hunt he spoke of, though,

lay before and not behind him.

I had waited for some change of countenance when he sighted my bared hooves—they

had been boot-hidden at our last meeting. Only I came to believe that indeed I

could have been as inhuman as the gryphon-man of my night vision and he would not have noted the difference since I was there to serve a purpose.

For Imgry, only his own ambition and aims had importance. Everything he said, thought, acted upon, was for one purpose alone—to achieve plans that burned in

him, to the extinction of all else.

He had laid out on the bench between us a much creased and spotted leaf of parchment. There were marks on it that my own past scouting had added, but much

was blank, and, upon that blank surface, his hand lay now, palm flat.

"The answer lies here." That he was so frank with me was enough to make me wary.

It was not in his nature to share even the thin edge of his plans with another.

Neither was it in him to be conciliatory, to ask instead of order.

"Be a little more plain with me my lord!" During the time since I had at last accepted this man's orders I had gained freedom of a sort—at high price. He could not overawe me any longer.

"We have accomplished much." That was not boast, but a matter of fact. "Our smiths have worked the metals that came out of the Waste—in spite of the danger.

We have now many weapons better than any of us have ever seen. We gather men—but

also we have lost." Now the palm lying on the map clenched into a fist.

"Still

the invader ships land fresh troops. Oh, it is true that they have not advanced

against us in force for a time. But that is not because we have held them. We can as yet only worry their flanks, strike a small blow here, another there.

Though"—there was a faint satisfaction in his tone now—"they have at last learned the folly of pursuing us too far into land we know far better than they.

Now"—he leaned forward a fraction— "we have learned for certain something new—"

When he paused I dared to strike in with a question. "Is it true they seek some

mysterious power?"

He shot me a glance so sharp and piercing he might have used the dart thrower on

his belt.

"So men talk openly of that?"

I shrugged. "It was a story told even before I rode north. There must be some sane reason why Alizon harries us, when, if we are to believe the word of traders, there is nothing in this land to match theirs. We possess no treasure."

There was no deference in what I said. I spoke as equal to equal Imgry was a force, yes, and those of the Dales might be very glad it was wielded for them.

However, he no longer impressed me. I was, in a way, inner-walled against him now.

He studied me with narrowed eyes. I think I had suddenly become a person, not a

weapon ready to his hand. That impatience that lay ever close beneath the surface of his manner retreated a little. He considered me in a new way for I was not the boy who had gone to Ulmsdale—but a new factor to be fitted into the

game.

"Your hand," I continued, "lies there upon the representation of the Waste.

Is

it there you believe your goal to be? No treasure in truth—but Power…"

His expression did not change, but I had a sensation of fronting pure cold.

Heat

of anger was not for such a man, his rage would ape the icy breath of the Winter

Dragon. I had prodded him then as I sat there, unmoved, drawing on my self-confidence. Why should I care that this Lord was ridden by ambition—to carry on great things if fate allowed? I was not of his kin.

"Yes, it is the Waste—or what it can hold." He had decided to accept me as I was. "We do not know what it may be. This much we have learned from more than one prisoner—the Hounds want something they must find or control. In their own

land they face an ancient enemy—one they would devour as they have much of the

Dales. This enemy—-by their accounts—may be kin to our Old Ones. They were armed

in rum by others who have some way of divining what they seek but not the manpower necessary to take it. The knowledge lies here!" His fingers turned inward, his nails scraped across the map as the talons of a hawk might grasp jealously held prey.

Joisan

THE MIST HUNG LIKE TAPESTRIES IN SOME GREAT HALL. SHUTTING IN the fire those two

whose warmth and life it served. Now I was there also and oddly content in a way

I had not been since that hour when Kerovan had turned his back upon me and ridden forth from Norsdale. I watching him go dry of eye, though weeping in my

heart. That sorrow and fear had been my own and I would not allow any to see the

signs of it. But here—it was like—like being with kinblood. I marveled a little

that I felt so.

"I am Elys," the woman said, adding no House or Dale to mark rank. Yet manifestly she was one who would sit at the high table in any hall.

"And this"—her hand reached forward a little as if, were there no space between

them, she would lay fingers on his arm (again I felt the bond between them, and

I hungered for its like)—"is Jervon."

"I am Joisan." Because they made no claim of land or kin, neither did I.

"Joisan," she repeated, her head a fraction to one side, almost as if she expected some echo from the mist.

That thought made me uneasy once again, broke through the dreamlike content which had held me for a fraction of time. I turned my head quickly. Only our four horses stood there.

"But you are also…" Elys's fingers twitched, as if, against her will, they sought to summon some trick of Power. Then her tone changed as she added the same warning Nalda had given me.

"This is a dangerous land in which to ride alone, Joisan."

I made the same reply that I had in Norsdale: "For one alone and careful, it may

be less dangerous than in company."

To my surprise Jervon gave a low laugh. "She is right." He spoke across me to Elys. "Have we not proven the truth of that ourselves? As long as one stays away

from certain—places." To that last word he gave emphasis.

For a moment I thought that his companion might take his words amiss, though I

knew nothing of what lay behind it all. I saw her teeth close for an instant upon her lip. Then she nodded.

"There are dangers and dangers. Only…" She turned her head to catch my eyes in

as direct a gaze as the Past-Abbess had bent upon me when I had informed her of

my plans. I did not know whether I held this woman in awe or not, but I knew she

was more than she seemed, and somehow she knew more about me than I had told or

wanted a stranger to discover.

"You carry," she said abruptly, "such protection as will serve you well. How else could I have felt your coming hither so strongly? But you are not of those

who by blood have the use of such."

My hands flew to the gryphon. Any chance to conceal it now was too late. That Elys guessed, or knew, something of its value I had no doubts now.

She shook her head quickly. My alarm must have been very transparent and easy to

read.

"No, Joisan, I do not know the nature of what you wear or to what use that may

be put. Only that it is a thing of Power. That you wear it so openly means that

that Power is ready to your hand—"

"No!" Least of all did I make any claim of strange talents before one who was of

the Old Blood. "This is a thing of Power, yes. But I do not know how to summon

what it may control. Perhaps my lord can riddle some of it, for this is his gift—that is my wedded lord. I have seen it act—but not by my will." Or had some

of its strength gone forth that time I feared for Kerovan's life because I had

willed it? Who could tell me that?

"And your lord is?" Jervon asked that.

My chin came up defiantly. Did he know of Kerovan? By his gear he must have served or did serve now with the Dale forces; he was clearly no outlaw.

Perhaps

he had heard those vile whispers, rumors of "monster."

"half-man," which had poisoned my lord's life, walked him away from me.

"My wedded lord is Kerovan of Ulmsdale," I answered and brought pride strong into my reply. "He rides now to answer the summons of Lord Imgry."

"Kerovan?" Elys made a question of the name as she spoke to Jervon. He shook his

head.

"There are many lords with Imgry—those who still live. Of him I have not heard."

I was sure he spoke the truth, but Elys, it was plain, was not satisfied. She turned that probing gaze now upon the gryphon itself.

"He who made a gift of such a thing," she commented, "must be no common man and

of no common heritage."

I knew I must make a choice. After all Elys was one who might well share Kerovan's burden, though she appeared to accept it as a part of her life, not a

curse. As Jervon also did. That he did and their bond was the stronger for his

acceptance (as any, looking upon them as I did with eyes made wise by my own hurt, could see) brought weariness upon me. These two were strong because they

had each other, were thus forged into a more formidable whole. That was what I

longed for with Kerovan. Perhaps I lacked wit, or strength, to bring such coupling about; perhaps I was too young, too poorly schooled in things of any heart save my own. Envy arose in me like a black and bitter taste in my mouth, a

shadow on the spirit. But I gave them truth because they held what I wanted, and

perhaps some small crumbs of knowledge of how they had gained that oneness might

fall within my reach.

"Lord Kerovan is partly of the Old Blood. He is—different."

I did not know what to expect, aversion, disbelief… What followed made me gasp

in surprise. Elys caught the hand which lay upon my knee. When I dropped my other, in surprise, Jervon's strong fingers closed about it, linking us three together. From each of them flowed warmly into me a feeling of peace and comfort. That envy withered, leaving only wonder and a vast longing, a birth of

hope.

The mist did not lift from this refuge between the ancient walls. We feasted on

the fat-dripping birds, watched the shifting billows of the feather-soft cloud

about us. The original purpose of the wall, which enclosed this space on three

sides, we did not know—there was no sign that anything had been erected within.

Under us the bare rock had been smoothed to a pavement on which the mist left damp drops. From time to time Jervon disappeared into the mist, with an uneasiness about him that watched me quickly.

"This is a dangerous place?" I had felt none of that warning which the gryphon

should have given. Elys shook her head.

"Not openly. Still, when one rides the Dales these days, there is ever a need for caution. Jervon is a man of war. His band was beaten into death, only he survived. It is not his way to accept any refuge he does not prove many times over."

"You—" I hesitated and then dared because of my deep need. If I only knew how these two had come together I might better be able to confront my lord. "You are

not of the Dales—but he is…"

She caught my meaning I am certain, the one I could not quite put into bald and

open words.

"I do not know of what blood I am," she answered me. "Those who gave me birth were washed ashore on the coast here after a great storm—seemingly they fled some danger, but what I was never told. My mother was one who had strange knowledge, she was Wise. Only, because she wished to give her lord children, she

had to strike a dire bargain with certain Powers. When my brother and I were born at one birth, she paid for us with her life. My brother—" She hesitated.

"He had none of her heritage. He distrusts such knowledge—it may be true that men cannot control the Moon Strength.

"The invaders came, my father went to war, later my brother. I gave what help I

could to those coast people who had been our friends. Some things I learned from

their Wisewoman—I was very young and had not much teaching. Our people fled inland and Jervon found us. He was sore wounded in both body and spirit. Later I

had a message that my brother was in danger. So I rode, and Jervon with me, because his lord was dead and he had no kin left. We—"

Again she hesitated, then continued, her voice coming in a tumble of words as if

she would quickly be done with the rest of the story. "We did what was to be done for my brother's sake. With him there was no place for me. I am what I was

born and few men—very few—can accept me so. Perhaps, in truth, only one…" She looked now at Jervon as he came back to us through the fringes of the mist.

There was that in her eyes which made me once more know envy. So, I was sure, I

looked upon Kerovan—but all that I had to offer had not been enough!

"Now," Elys spoke more briskly, "we ride together as blank shields, lending our

sword strength to those who need it most. Yes, I am war-trained. It was my father who willed it so. We are kin less, landless, but never without what we need most."

Kinless and landless they might be. Woman of Power, Man of Sword—but they were

one.

"Where do you ride now?" I asked. Though I had determined to make this quest alone, now I longed, suddenly and fiercely, for her to say south. Surely if they

were blank shields the gathering of forces under Lord Imgry would attract them.

Rather to my surprise Elys shook her head. "I do not yet know. There is…" She looked troubled. "Joisan, would you fear if I made a scry pattern for you?"

I remembered once I had seen that done—and also for me—in the bowl of the Past-Abbess. Then I had seen my lord but had known it not.

"You can do this?"

"Only for others, not for Jervon—not for me. It is like all Power—it does not work for the direct advantage of the summoner. Still I feel it should be tried

now—for you." .

"Once it was done for me—only I did not understand then what was meant by what I

saw."

Elys nodded. "Many times such foreshadows can be obscure. They can even deceive—always remember that. You must not confidently expect that this or that

will come to pass. We make many decisions, turn right on some path when we might

have turned left, enter into a hall wherein it chances that we meet with one to

alter our future. There are ways beyond counting in which fate can be so changed. All we learn from the bowl is one single path. Do you wish me to do this for you?"

Jervon was now standing at her back, his face sober. When he spoke quickly, before I could answer, it was to Elys not me.

"This is needful?"

"I think so." Her words came slowly. "If Joisan agrees—this may be a part of why

we were led here."

He knelt to open one of the saddlebags, bringing forth something bundled in a heavy swathing of cloth. This he passed to Elys as if he handled bare steel, uncertain that it might not turn its cutting edge against him.

The wrapping was in two parts, the outer being a length that might have been cut

from an old cloak. Underneath that was a fair piece of linen with across it, not

in stitchery, but as if one had applied a scorching hot brand to its surface, brownish runes and symbols. All Elys's attention centered on what she did. I saw

her lips move, though she spoke no words aloud. Yet it seemed that now the mist,

held at bay by our fire, had a life of its own and began to encircle us, pushing

against an unseen barrier.

What lay within the inner cloth was a cup of moon-bright silver, into the waiting hollow of which Elys poured liquid from a small vial she took from her

belt pouch, measuring it drop by drop. Now I heard the murmur of her voice as she repeated in cadence what could only be the spell words of a Wisewoman.

Carefully she set the cup on the rock between us, holding both hands about it.

Her eyes were closed, her head upheld as if she looked far beyond.

Then, she jerked her hands away—some mighty heat might have blasted outward—and

looked directly to me.

"Watch then!" I could not have disobeyed that order even if I wished.

I leaned forward, my hands on the rock, my arms braced on either side of the cup, my head bent so I might see clearly within.

At first there was nothing, only that thin film of oddly dark liquid. I could not see through it to the silver beneath. Then the liquid began to swirl about

and about, rising in the hollow.

I felt dizzy, my head giddy, I could not turn away my eyes. Slowly the liquid stopped, now it filled the cup to its very brim, still dark… A mirror's surface

but one that reflected nothing.

Nothing? No, there was movement there, not caused by the liquid itself. A shadow



arose to the surface, changing, becoming clearer. Now I saw, not my own face reflected therein, but a sharp picture.

"Kerovan!"

He was there, armored, helmed, but still bare of foot—or hoof. The mail he wore

was strange, holding the same blue sheen as that which clothed Elys. He sat with

a bared sword stuck point deep in gravelly earth as if he must keep a weapon close to hand. Behind him grazed three horses, and there was a stream, coarse grass, some stunted bushes. There was a strangeness about that land as if it were not Dale country.

His face was that of a carven figure like unto those I had seen in the Waste—nothing remaining in it of the Kerovan I wished to see. In a way he was as

walled in crystal as the gryphon— beyond my reach.

I dared not look too long directly upon him lest my longing draw from me the strength I needed. So I busied myself studying the place about him, trying to locate some landmark, some way of telling where he so rested.

How long that picture held I did not know. Then it began to fade, was gone.

While, as a bubble is pricked and becomes nothing, that which filled the cup fell back to the bottom of the hollow.

"I think"—Elys spoke first, breaking through my frustration and despair—"that is

the Waste."

I settled back, aware now of the ache in my shoulders, the pain of my hands, as

if I had tried to dig into the unyielding rock with my fingers.

"The Waste?" I echoed. Why should Kerovan head back into that piece of ill omen?

He had gone to Lord Imgry. Had the sight of his hooves, the knowledge that he was of what would seem to a Dalesman tainted blood, made him an exile after all?

Jervon shifted a little where he sat beside Elys. "So—" His brows drew together

in a frown. "Well, it was well within the realm of possibilities that sooner or

later Imgry would be moved to try that." His eyes were on the cup around which

Elys was once more enfolding the cloth, having thrown the liquid it contained into the fire, only to have her act followed by a burst of brilliant flame.

"Try what, my Lord?" Instinctively I gave him the honor title.

"Imgry"—with one hand he caressed his chin where an old scar made a half-discernible seam—"has always been one to plan—to dare—if another bears the

burden of the action. I would say that it is now in his mind to meet with some

of those in the Waste—and not the outlaws or scavengers—to perhaps propose an alliance."

Anger burned in me. "Using my lord," I burst out, "because he is of mixed blood

and perhaps, that being so, some of those who wander or abide there might then

feel kinship? He uses men hardly, does this Imgry!"

"It is because he does," Jervon replied, "that perhaps, in the end, he will impose peace in this land. He is not loved, but he is obeyed, and that obedience

draws together men who might not otherwise be held to any strong purpose."

"But the Waste…" Lord Imgry's qualities of leadership meant nothing to me.

"Kerovan has been there—he barely lived when he went up against one Power.

And

he has no longer access to this." My hand covered the gryphon. "He is not trained or armored against what prowls there. May Imgry be everlastingly cursed!" My hands curled talon-wise. I wished that I were a hawk to tear at the

face of that cold and devious lord.

"Your lord must have chosen to do this. Imgry could not have forced him so."

Elys still held the now shrouded cup. "There is that in him"—she spoke as if Kerovan were before her, or else that she indeed knew him well—"which would not

yield if he wished it not. He is"—she shook her head slowly—"he is unlike any I

have met before. A man of two natures, each held at bay lest they lead him to destruction. Within him is locked Power he does not want. He might even ride his

present road because he seeks the peace of death."

How could she know him thus? Unless there was in her the gift of what the Wisewomen call the True Sight.

"No!" I was on my feet, looking around as if I could seize a weapon to destroy

her words. I fought to master my fear as I said then, "If he is in the Waste, there, too, I go!"

"The Waste"—Jervon might have been speaking to an impatient child—"is very large. You have no guide—

"But I do!" I did not know whence came my conviction as my hand was tight on the

gryphon. "There is this—and I shall learn how to use it!"

"Perhaps that is possible," Elys said slowly. "But are there the seeds of Power

in you?" She arose and began studying my face. "No, you do not know what you can

do—not yet. However, this is the road you will follow—" Jervon started to speak.

She stopped him with a gesture. "This is a choice she has already made, for good

or ill. What remains…" Now she looked at him instead. "The Waste and a man who

may or may not be found, a task which may or may not be beyond the doing. We have been only drifting, you and I, do we now make a choice also?"

His frown grew darker but he said at once, "If so be your will."

She shook her head vigorously. "Not my will. The day is past when I choose to ride and you follow. We go as of one mind or not at all."

I looked eagerly from one to the other. This Elys might not be one of the Old Ones, but she controlled a fraction of Power learning and through that might be

able to claim kin-right with the Waste roamers. I had spoken of a guide, but I

knew not how to make use of it. This was no venture of theirs, save I wanted to

ride in their company. Their closeness of spirit was warm to my heart, so I clung to the fancy that being with them longer I could learn the secret of that—enough of it to smooth my way with Kerovan.

Jervon hitched at his swordbelt. "Might as well ride one way as another," he commented. "Also I think that your Kerovan" . —now he spoke to me—"since he was

dispatched by Imgry, would head directly westward from the headquarters. Thus we

go south if we would pick up his trail."

"I have heard that Lord Imgry buys much of the salvaged Waste metal for the forging of arms," I said. "Therefore there must be a going and coming of those

who deal in that. Perhaps Kerovan would follow their trails."

"Well enough. Let morning come and this mist rise—then we ride south and west.

If there lies any trace of such a trail we can cut it so in time."

The mist that imprisoned us did not rise during the rest of that day, still clinging heavy as night came. I watched it uneasily as the darkness grew, for I

kept thinking that, from the corners of my eyes, I now and then caught a hint of

movement within it which was not the billows of the fog itself, but rather as if

something more tangible hovered there, using it as a cloak from which to spy on

us.

Jervon ventured out from time to time coming back with armloads of dead wood, which he piled close to hand. Only when the dark really deepened Elys put an end

to that. She confirmed my own suspicions when she produced from her belt purse a

slender stick of blue.

With this in her right hand and her left raised so that her slender fingers were

free to move in complex patterns, she proceeded to draw lines on the pavement,

fencing in our campsite, including the mounts, which Jervon had hobbled and brought closer to the fire. What Elys finished at last was a star of five points, setting the lines true with skillful accuracy, though the labor wore away her strange pen.

In each of the outflung points she proceeded to add an intricate symbol, thus locking us in. The horses had been restless for some time past, throwing up their heads, snorting, staring into the mist with signs for growing uneasiness.

However, once her work was complete, they quieted.

Nor, I discovered, did I myself now have that sense of being watched by the unseen.

I shared journey food from my own store with my new companions as we settled down in the warmth of the fire, agreeing upon taking watches turn about to feed

the flames. Elys, by lot, was the first sentry. Wrapped in my cloak, not laying

aside my mail, I strove to sleep, crossing my hands over the gryphon on my breast.

Jervon awakened me at the proper time and I watched the paling of the stars as

morning drew near. For the mist had withdrawn, save for a ragged wisp or two.

The star drawn for our protection held a faint light of its own. I studied it and wondered how one learned such lore. The Dalesfolk believed that only one born with the Talent could be taught, though we had Wisewomen, healers, gatherers of herb lore, and the like. Yet there had been the Lady Math—my aunt.

She had taken the lesser vows of the Dames, and to all such this kind of learning was a sin. Still, in the last hour of her life, she had brought forth a

curiously carven wand—before sending me forth from our threatened keep—saying she would have her own kind of vengeance against the despoilers and murderers besetting us. The keep had burst apart in flame and flying stones, taking to their deaths most of those who had dared invade its inner walls.

That the destruction had come by her will I had never doubted, though I do not

know what Power she had called upon in that hour or how she had summoned it.

Might it be that some of full Dales-blood, wary as they were of the brooding past, did indeed share a ghost of Old talent. Perhaps children born and nurtured

in this haunted land were really apart from the parent stock. I had never considered that before.

It was our custom to look askance on anything that smacked of such learning.

Those proven of half-blood were avoided, looked upon by most as… In the name of

my dear lord, I refused to use, even in my mind, that ugly name. What of the rest of us who bore no outward stigmata? Did we also carry traits of strangeness

that were not as obvious as my lord's cloven feet, his eyes of amber yellow, but

that could, if known, exile us quickly?

Was this an argument I could use with Kerovan? If I could but display a little

of the talent, prove to him that I was not as pure blooded as he believed… I moved restlessly around the fire, longing for the coming of true morning. Had I

found an ally in Elys, one who would train me if I had that which would be fertile ground for learning?

It took many years to make a Wise woman, it was said. I had no such time to spend. I remembered once again that meeting with Neevor, that stranger of the Waste who had said the crystal gryphon was a key, which I only could use when the time came. If so—surely his words argued I had some command of Power.

I wanted to shake Elys awake, demand that she aid me. But I fought against impatience, kept my desires in check for the proper time. This was not a matter

that could be rushed, my mind told my heart—but oh, how my heart raged for action!

Kerovan

IMGRY MAY HAVE THOUGHT HIMSELF PERSUASIVE; THE FINAL decision was my own. I had

listened to his summing up of what he believed the enemy wanted—and of what might be done in return by making contact with some authority within the Waste,

to give a warning—and make an offer. The latter, to be sure, was an arrogant gesture on his part, for what had we to offer that could match those forces the

Old Ones commanded? I did not have the ambition that drove Imgry. On the other

hand, if by some fluke of fortune, I might succeed, I would have achieved something that the Dalesman must admit only a despised half-blood would dare to

attempt.

He offered me a command, but I refused it. He did not like that. I think he wanted no ambassador to have too much freedom.

"One man," he had said, "to go alone is too high a risk."

"One man. Lord Imgry? Look at me. Ask any in this hall if I am in their eyes a

man. You have made me your envoy because of my heritage. Then let me go as if I

am truly of the blood you deem me. I shall ride openly and wait to see what fortune will send. What I can do, I shall. I promise nothing."

Reluctant as he was, he knew I spoke the truth. Nor was he niggardly with equipment. I was offered, and accepted, mail, sword, and helm, new-fashioned of

the salvaged metal from the

Waste. All men knew that this was the best, an alloy we had no equal for in the

making of fine armament.

I chose horses, three of them, from the lines. The mounts from the eastern Dales

(there were all too few of those left now) were of little use in the west.

Nor

did I want hill-bred stock, for, hardy and tough as those were, the Waste was partly desert. A mount used to the plentiful waters of mountain springs could not stand the heat and lack of forage and drink.

What I took were such beasts as were used by the Waste scavengers. Luckily, in

that sweep Imgry had ordered to gather all available mounts, these had appeared.

Slightly larger than mountain-bred ponies, they were gaunt, with long necks out

of proportion to their bodies. Their eyes were unusually large and heavily lidded, well lashed to screen out glare of sun and wind-borne grit. Their hooves

were broader than normal, meant for the traversing of shifting sand. They had a

reputation for being vicious, and it was always necessary to hobble or tether them at night.

Two I would ride turn and turn about, and the third would serve as a pack animal. It took me four days of careful preparation, of selecting supplies.

And

I did not dream again on those nights between.

I refused the map Imgry had played with during our interview. Such sites as were

marked on it had come by word of mouth from scavengers, who were not to be trusted, being always jealous of their sources of supply.

When Riwal and I had traveled the Road of Exile, that had been well to the north. The road that had led me to the place where Rogear and my mother had wrought their black incantations was also in that direction—barren and desolate.

If there was any life now to be found in the Waste I felt I would discover it elsewhere—though the Old Ones could not be judged by our standards. Still they

must need water, sustenance of some kind, shelters more than a jumble of ruins.

Thus I decided to strike straight west, following for the first part of my journey the faint trail left by the scavengers bringing in metal for Imgry's forges.

I rode out in the early morning saying no farewells. The night before I had met

with Imgry for the last time. He spoke again of the urgency for carrying my warning of invasion to any of authority I might find—of his complete certainty

that somewhere in the unknown west lay whatever it was that the invaders really

sought. He did not come to watch me out of sight—I was merely a dart he had launched. If I struck true, that was good; if I failed… Well, all he could do had been done.

My mount fought control, but when I was well away from the camp and headed west

he settled down, while the two on lead ropes came easily enough. All of them from time to time held high their narrow heads, expanding red-lined nostrils as

if they searched for some scent that was of importance.

We were four days along, the last three well into a scrub wilderness, before the

one I rode cried out, making a sound like an eerie scream. The other two answered him, their weird cries echoing back from jagged-topped heights, which

overhung the path so darkly we moved through shadows as thick as twilight.

The

walls of that cut grew increasingly high, drawing together overhead. Then the two cliffs actually met, forming an arch into an even darker day.

My mount broke into a fast trot I did not try to restrain. The others quickened

stride in turn. We passed through a rough-walled tunnel to come out into a brighter light than I had seen for hours.

Here was the Waste. No remnant of any path remained, only bare rock as footing,

though that was crossed here and there by a runnel of coarse sand. The land itself was a rolling plain. In the far distance were shadows against the sky, which I thought must mark highlands. For want of a better guide I fastened on those as my goal.

The led horses were no longer content to trail behind, but moved up, one on either side of my mount, matching their pace to his, as if they also had riders

and we were readying for a charge. I thought that they were at home in this country and perhaps they could, by their attitude, give me warning of other life

forms we might encounter though who, or what, could live in such a land as this

I found hard to guess.

I made camp while the sun was still up in the afternoon sky, for my horses had

come directly to a dip in the land, at the bottom of which there was a sluggish

stream pushing out of the ground, running for a space, only to be swallowed once

more by the greedy earth. However, along its banks grew grass and several stunted bushes. Out of the nearest of those clumps burst winged creatures.

They

moved with speed, but I saw that they were black of feather and their heads, hanging downward on oddly crooked necks, were rawly red as if new plucked.

Their squawks were as unnatural as the cries of the horses had been and they circled overhead, plainly angry at being disturbed. I did not like the sight of

them. There was something foul about their black bodies and those naked heads.

What had drawn them into the brush made itself plain within a moment or two.

For

a noisome stench of something dead, and dead for some time, arose strongly, as

my horse half leaped, half slid down to the water's edge.

He plunged his muzzle deep into the water, his companions copying that action as

speedily. I slid out of the saddle, made my tether ropes fast to the nearest bush. Then, though I disliked the business, I went to see what lay where the still-screaming birds had been busy.

Bird beak and blazing sun had done nasty work, but there remained enough to perceive that this had once been a near-human form—though very small. A child—here? I tried not to breathe as I made myself move closer. Whatever it had

been alive, it was no kin to Dalesmen. The body, where flesh still remained, was

furred with a bristly brown hair standing stiffly up from the roots. The head and face were so destroyed I could not trace any features, and for that I was glad. Both fingers and toes ended in great hooked claws, in some of which clods

of earth still clung. The thing lay half in a scooped out pit as if it had been

digging frantically to escape whatever fate had struck it down.

Using branches I broke from a bush, I rolled the thing farther into the hole and

tossed rocks and sand over it. I had no intention of leaving it uncovered were I

to camp here.

As I worked I kept glancing around. Whatever had killed this creature might just

still linger—though there was very little cover about and I did not believe that

the birds would have been feeding, or my horses would have entered the oasis, had there been danger.

I picketed my mounts as far from that rude grave as I could, and I did not drink

of the water myself, rather relied on what I

carried in my saddle bottle. The shape and size of the dead creature intrigued

me.

There are many legends of things that have ventured or blundered out of the Waste in times past, of monsters and demons, which men, during the early days of

our people in the Dales, had fought, killed, or been slain by. I had heard of great scaled reptiles with talons and beaks, of furred creatures near as tall as

a keep tower, of smaller flyers with stinger tails carrying a fell poison.

Then

there were those in human form who could persuade a man they were kin, then ensorcell or kill him.

Riwal had been so enthralled by the Waste mysteries that he had kept records of

such stories and had shared them with me. In his cottage he had bits and pieces

of old images that he had found—some beautiful, some grotesque, some frightening. However, we could never be sure whether those had been made to resemble actual life forms or were the imaginings of artists who must have dreamed strange dreams. Nowhere could I remember having seen or heard of anything resembling the creature I had just buried.

Its wickedly sharp claws might have been employed for more than digging. With that thought in mind I drew my sword, set it point down in the earth close to hand as I opened my supply bag, found the tough trail rations, and chewed slowly, alert to any sound.

The birds continued to wheel overhead for a time, shrieking their anger.

Finally

they drew into a flock and, like a noisome black cloud, circled the oasis for a

last time, then flew northward over the Waste.

The horses continued to graze, never raising their heads. As a rule their species could not be brought to approach dead things so easily, yet these three

had not shied away when we entered the cut. I settled to my dry meal, reminding

myself that I must never make the worst possible error—that of judging any life

form I found here by the standards of the Dales. I had entered a new and different world.

After the flight of the birds it seemed very quiet—broken only by the sullen gurgle of the water, the sounds made as the horses cropped grass. There was no

buzz of insect, no rustle of breeze through the twisted and curled leaves of the

bushes. The heat of the westering sun seemed heavier. My mail burdened my shoulders, sweat trickled from beneath the rim of my helm.

Having finished eating, I explored this pocket further. What herbage grew made

the most of the water's trickle. Along the banks grass was thick, bushes like solid balls, so intertwined with one another that I thought even a slashing sword could not have cleared a path.

The water issued from a rock-walled bank, the stone of which was smeared with a

rusty-red stain reminding me unpleasantly of blood. Another warning against drinking here. That crevice was not natural, I decided, too well shaped—as if it

had been set here to pipe in a flow of water for travelers. What kind of travelers?

Downstream I searched with care, but I could discover no signs that any had camped recently. The sand and gravel did preserve here and there formless prints

suggesting that it was used by animals native to this harsh land.

What was the thing I had buried? I could not force myself to disinter it for another examination. Still, I was troubled by its presence. To establish a camp

here, even for the sake of the horses, would be, I decided, too great a risk.

This oasis must be a loadstone for any life nearby.

I did linger until the sun was nearly down before I let the horses drink a second time and then headed out into the open country, taking care to pick a way

that led across the rockiest section I could find, so we would leave no trail.

Those heights, which I had marked as a goal, were now a black fringe across a rapidly darkening sky. I began to look for shelter, even if it were only an outcropping rock against which I could set my back in case of attack. I finally

sighted a stand of stony spires set closely together, and toward that I turned

the horses.

There was still light enough to perceive that this was the first indication something living here had needed a home or rough fort. What I had first thought

to be spires of natural rock were a building. The structure had been so attuned

to its surroundings that you could almost believe it was some freak of nature.

The tall rocks that formed its walls were rough, unworked, set vertically, but

very closely, side to side, so that the cracks between were as narrow as their

surfaces would allow. They were of the same yellowish-white as all the boulders

I had seen hereabouts. What I did not expect was that the interior they guarded

was filled by what looked, in this half-light, to be a vast, untidy nest.

Dried brush, clumps of coarse grass torn up by the roots, had been packed to such a depth that the top of the mass reached my waist when I dismounted. I prodded at it with swordpoint. Under the touch of metal the stuff broke apart,

turned to powder, so dried and old it was.

Fastening the horses to one of the side pillars, I set about raking out that mess, using mainly my sword, as there was reluctance in me to touch any of the

debris with my hands. At length I drew on my mail gauntlets before I dug into the lower layers.

Something hard rolled against my boot. I looked down into the empty eyeholes of

a skull. Manifestly this was the remains of a human, or something near human.

I

put the thing aside and kept on with my task.

There were more bones, which I had no desire to examine, and a faintly evil smell that grew stronger as I delved deeper, throwing out the fetid, decayed material. I became aware of a persistent itching about my wrist as I tossed out

the last I could grub free.

Washing my gauntleted hands with sand, I unfastened the wrist binding and turned

back the supple linkage to bare what had become so much a part of me during the

months since I had found it—that band of metal I had discovered by chance and which had saved me when Rogear had tried first to blind, and then to kill.

The band glowed; it was warm. The runes carved around it were bright sparks of

fire. I stared down, near entranced, until on sudden impulse I thrust my arm into the space between the pillars. The marks flashed even brighter—yet I had had no warning of uneasiness.

Still, from the tall rocks, from which I had scraped the last of the nest, came

an answering spark of light. I drew my small boot-top knife and picked out from

a rock a scrap of the same blue metal as made up my wrist band, tucking it away

in my pouch.

To keep my horses better tempered, tethered as they were away from grass and water, I crumpled journey cakes upon a rock. They nosed at them avidly, paying

no attention as I made them secure for the night before I crawled into the space

I had cleared.

There was only the one entrance, though overhead was no roof. The rocks tilted

slightly inward so that the open space above was small. I pulled before the door

itself my saddle and the bags of supplies, using them as a barricade. This night

I wished that I had some comrade-at-arms to share watch and watch. Instead I must depend upon that faculty any soldier learns, the art of awaking into instant awareness at the least change in his surroundings. Once more I laid my

sword, bare-bladed, at my side, while I sought sleep.

If any danger prowled the night it did not come near my refuge. However, I was

awakened at dawn by that same shattering scream my mount had earlier given when

he first sniffed the wind from the Waste. I crawled out to discover all three of

the horses pulling furiously at their halters, rearing and pawing at the rocks.

Though I used all the art I knew to soothe them, I discovered, once I had loaded

and saddled, there was little I could do with them. They were determined to head

back to the oasis and perforce I had to allow that, since they needed grazing and water. They could have it as I broke my own fast.

Thus the sun was about an hour above the horizon when we set forth again toward

the heights. Gradually the country changed. The desert stretch became a brown-gray soil that rooted clumps of grass, seared by the sun. As we passed, my

led horses strove to snatch mouthfuls of the stuff, their elongated necks aiding

them to so feed. Bushes were next, then trees, some of which my animals made wide detours to avoid.

I trusted to their instincts for they knew this land far better than I. Near midday I saw the first moving thing. The clumps of brush had become so thick that we must swing well to avoid them, and on such a side venture I caught a glimpse of more open land.

Crossing that was a rider. Though he was distant I could not mistake the glint

of sun reflected from armor. His horse was unlike my three; there was no sign of

the long neck.

He rode with the ease of a man who knew exactly where he was going. I did not think him a scavenger—though he could be an outlaw. Or… this might be the very

kind of contact I had been sent to seek! I loosened my sword in its sheath and

headed out into the open willing to let myself be sighted, in spite of possible

risk.

Certainly his mount was of better stock than the desert-bred nags I had selected, for, though he did not appear to be going at more than a comfortable

trot, he continued to draw ahead. Nor did he seem aware that I followed.

Not too far before him stretched a spread of woodland. I wanted to catch up before he vanished into its shade. If I were to meet with trouble I desired such

confrontation in the open. So I urged my mount to a faster pace, though he snorted and jerked at the reins angrily.

The stranger was almost under the shadow of the trees when the ill-tempered beast I bestrode actively protested our chase. Voicing one of those screams, he

arose with his forefeet pawing the air. The other two used their advantage at the same moment to pull back on their lead cords. Perforce I was brought to a speedy halt.

Viciously my mount continued to rear and kick, attempting to attack his own companions. I had my hands very full striving to control the three of them.

What

suddenly pierced the din they were creating was a whistle, commanding, imperative.

My horses set all four feet to the ground again. Still their eyes rolled to show

the whites, ribbons of foam dripped to the earth they had torn up with their hooves. However, now all three stood as if as well rooted as the trees not too

far away.

Taking as tight a grip on reins and lead ropes as I could, I looked around.

The rider I had trailed had finally swung about and was heading toward me, the

gait of his mount a smooth flowing gallop. Indeed that horse wax different.

As

large as a lowland-bred stallion, it possessed a strangely dappled hide such as

I had never seen before; shades of gray-brown merged into one another so there

was no clearly spotted pattern, only a suggestion of such.

His horsecloth was not woven, but rather formed by the skin of some beast—silver

gray and also spotted. As he drew nearer I recognized it for the tanned hide of

a snow cat, one of the rarest and yet most deadly and cunning beasts to roam the

heights within the Dales.

He, himself, wore armor of the same silver-gray as the skin. The helm, which overshadowed his face until he seemed half masked, was surmounted by a beautifully carven crouching cat of that species. There were yellow jewels of eyes in the cat head, and, by some trick of the sun, they appeared to blink as

if the thing were alive and merely resting on a perch, watching me curiously.

The stranger rode only a short distance toward me before he pulled up his shadow-patterned horse. My three beasts sweated, stared wild-eyed, gave the impression they were possessed by terror. Yet this other had, as far as I could

see, made no gesture suggesting attack. His sword still rested in sheath, its heavy pommel forming the head of a cat, while the belt he wore was again of fur

and its buckle a snarling feline head.

Though he had halted some distance away, I could see those cat heads clearly.

They loomed as if they were the House sign of some clan.

We sat so for some moments of silence, eyeing each other across that gap he had

chosen to keep between us. Now I was able to make out more plainly his features.

He was young, I thought, perhaps near my own age. His face was smooth—but that

was not strange, for many of the Dalesmen grew little or very scant beards until

they were well past the middle span of life.

His skin was brown, and his eyes were slightly elongated, sloping up a little under straight brows. The more I studied him, the surer I became I had found one

who called this Waste, or some place like it, his home. This was no strayed Dalesman. His accoutrements were too finely wrought, his mount a superb animal.

Also, though he looked fully human, yet I did not need that light warmth at my

wrist to tell me that this was one who possessed Power of one kind or another.

He regarded me with an equally intent study. I was certain he had not missed the

sight of my hooves in the special stirrups I had devised. Did he know of any of

my kind? Were there any of my kind or kin—or was I merely half-misshapen hybrid,

and so, in the eyes of any true blood here, as much a mistake of birth as I was

in the Dales?

I knew that without any warning it was useless for me to approach him closer.

It

was plain that my three animals held him in odd terror. They shivered, while foam still gathered at the corners of their mouths.

Since he had not drawn steel—did he think that I was so unworthy a foe, so helpless that he need not defend himself in that way—dare I accept him as neutral? There was no other choice. I would do what I had to.

Taking a chance, I dropped my reins and raised my hands palm out. The silk-fine

mesh of my mail fell a little back from my wrist and the sunlight made a blue flame of that band.

Was it a passport, something that would gain me recognition in this place, at this time? I could only wait on the stranger's answer to me.

Joisan

AS THE LIGHT OF DAY GREW STRONGER MY COMPANIONS ROUSED.

The mist was gone and the protecting star about us faded. Jervon gave the animals each a small measure of grain, led them out to water at a hillside spring, while we opened supply bags for our own food.

With the mounts saddled, the packs on the pony, we headed away from the walls,

following a hint of a trail, a shadow of a road, perhaps one so old that even the hills across which it cut had forgotten it.

Jervon led, heading westward across heights where there were no signs of any traveler before us, save twice a tumbledown hut such as were built by herders when they took the flocks out for summer forage. Those days of peaceful herding

were past. We saw no one or any life, save for a blundering hill hen or two that

ran squawking from under the very hooves of our horses, and once a glimpse of a

snow cat staring arrogantly down from so high a ledge I wondered how even that

venturous climber could have reached it.

We lit no fire that night since we camped in the open, it was plain that my companions moved with the wariness of scouts and took all precautions. As we sat

closely together, more for the need for company than the warmth of our bodies, I

asked whether they had ever been into the Waste.

"Only to the fringes," Jervon answered. "For a while we rode with scouts who were sent north to see if the invaders had headed down country. There was no sign of any Hound passing, though we combed the country as best we could. We saw

the beginning of the Road of Exile."

The Road of Exile—Kerovan had mentioned that during those days when we had traveled to Norsdale, leading my poor people to safety. He had once traveled for

a space along it, though he had not told me many details of that journey.

Even

that much of his past he had refused to share with me.

"Do any know where that leads?" I asked.

"Not that I have heard. We did not try to follow it. But neither have I heard of

any other open road into that country."

During our day's journey I had had no chance to speak to Elys about my idea of

early morning. Somehow I did not wish to mention my longing to master Power before Jervon. It was not because I feared he might object. Because of Elys he

accepted much where any other Dalesman would have decried the very idea. It was

rather that I was shy of making a plea for aid and did not know just how to phrase such.

During the next four days I had no better luck. The land was so deserted that,

even though we traveled with all caution, we covered a goodly amount of distance

in a short time. On the fifth evening Jervon pointed to the westward where there

was a yellow glow across the clouds, differing from the clean sunsets I had always known.

"The Waste."

During our journey to the southwest we had searched diligently for any trace of

a track such as the metal gatherers might have made, but had not sighted a single sign of such. Now, when we had unloaded the pack pony and Elys had collected certain dry branches, which she said would not yield much notice of a

fire, Jervon did not unsaddle. Rather he proposed to ride out on a half circle,

seeking again for trail marks.

As the yellow sky-glow faded, Elys and I spitted hill hens to roast, a more tasty meal than we had had for four days past. This was my chance and, as we worked, I made my desires known to her, hurrying lest Jervon return before I was

done.

She listened, but when she spoke it was with a most serious note in her low voice.

"There is some logic in what you say. It could well be that this country has an

influence over those born here—even if they have never had any reason to believe

they had talents because fortune did not demand such efforts from them. As for

learning the calling of Power—yes, I could teach you a little, if you showed aptitude, even as I was schooled in my girlhood and youth. But there is no time.

This is not knowledge that one can pick from the air. It needs careful study.

However, that does not mean that you cannot strive within yourself to awaken what may lie in you. Only you must be very patient."

After this warning she began there and then outlining to me some disciplines of

mind I could practice, while I vowed that if I could win anything by following

her teaching—that I would do. So from that hour forward I stretched my mind as a

warrior stretches and exercises his body that battle skills may be known to every muscle over which he holds command.

We rode on in the morning, though Jervon had again found no guide, heading outward into a land that was grim and full of foreboding. I knew that the Waste

must be a mixture of different kinds of land, but here it was all sand and gravel and bare rock upon which the sun beat with great waves of heat. We used

the tricks of travelers in such desert land, seeking shelter during the worst hours, traveling in the early morning or in the evenings. We did not move at night, bright though the moon might hang over us.

Here there were too many oddly shaped shadows, strange sounds (though those were

far away). It was better to camp, even though our traveling time was thus cut to

a crawl, and be sure we were on guard.

By some favor of fortune we did chance upon meager grazing and water each day.

Jervon remarked that, though there was no sign of any road, it might be that we

had stumbled on some travelers' route—perhaps long forsaken.

I watched my gryphon anxiously, hoping it might in some way offer a clue as to

whether we were headed in the right direction or not. I did not know what I expected, it was mainly hope that kept me at that quest. Only the globe remained

ever the same.

Jervon wove a zigzag path ahead of us, still hunting a track, returning always

to report he found none. Perforce, because we had to have some goal, we chose to

head toward the line of heights in the west—those that loomed purple-black at night and brown by day. They were the only noticeable landmarks.

On the second day Jervon returned at a fast trot from one of his side expeditions. We had kept our horses to a walk for their own sakes and this burst

of speed on his part suggested trouble.

"There is an oasis with water where there has been a camp," he reported, "and recently."

So slim a chance that that camp had been Kerovan's. Still I at once swung my mare in that direction, the others with me. The oasis lay in a narrow cleft, cutting below the surface of this sandy waste. It held greenery, dark and withered-looking. The water of the stream was not pleasant appearing either, rather dark and turgid as if it were a stagnant pool, though there was a slow,

rolling current. However, our beasts drank greedily as Jervon pointed to where

grass had been shortened by grazing and that not long ago.

"There is something else—" He beckoned us to follow him between two bushes.

I sniffed and wished I had not. There was the sweet corruption-smell of death here! The ground was disturbed, a pile of stones covering a narrow, filled-in depression.

"An animal would not be buried." Elys surveyed the stones. "But that space is too small to hold a man."

To my relief she was right, only a half-grown child could be in such a short grave. But a child—Kerovan could not have killed a child!

Elys's eyes were closed, she swayed, Jervon was at her side instantly, his hand

out to steady her. She shuddered before she looked at us again.

"Not of our blood—it was not of our blood. Something strange—or perhaps not strange in this land. But whatever it was, it lived as a servant of the Dark."

I drew back involuntarily. The Dark—that signified the evil Powers and all who

served them. Had Kerovan been attacked again by such force, which he spawned in

the Waste?

"Leave be!" Jervon's order came harshly. "There is no need to fear the dead, do

not mind search for it. We must not meddle." It was the first time he had spoken

so, with such a show of authority.

She turned away. "You are right. And this is truly dead—for many days I would say."

"Then Kerovan—" I stumbled over one of the rolling stones. He must not have been

responsible for that death, though he could have buried the corpse. I held on to

that belief as tightly as I could. I hoped that he had not fronted again—and alone—a dire danger of the Dark.

"I do not believe," Jervon continued, "that this is a place of good omen."

The three of us withdrew from that grave place, as far down the cut as we could,

allowing our mounts, who showed no distaste for their surroundings, to graze through the hottest part of the day. When the sun was westering we started on.

It was when we topped the far bank of that sinister hollow that what I had waited for so long happened. The gryphon flashed with more than the sun's reflection. At my cry the others drew rein, while I shifted in the saddle, this

way and that, my attention close fixed upon the ball—until I thought I judged in

what direction it flashed the brightest.

My companions willingly granted me the lead and I pushed Bural at a faster gait

to where a circle of pointed rocks rose abruptly from the sand-drifted ground.

Lying to one side there was a mass of dry stuff, which had plainly been dug from

the core of the rock huddle. Powdery, disintegrating wood mingled with remains

of long-withered vegetation. Perched on the highest point of that moldering heap

sat a grinning skull and I thought that I sighted other bits of brittle bones in

the decayed mass.

"Someone made camp here." Jervon slipped from the saddle, went to peer within the circle of rocks. He stirred the dark heap a little with the toe of his boot.

"This may once have been a nest lying within that."

"The nest of something large enough to hunt such prey?" Elys gestured toward the

skull.

Jervon stopped to view it the closer, though he did not touch it.

"Very old, I think. Also what laired here once must have been gone for a long time," came his verdict.

I cupped the crystal between my palms. Now heat flared from it, startling me into a cry of pain. I let the globe fall, to swing at the end of its chain.

Though I made no move of body it continued to move. In spite of my disgust and,

yes, a growing fear, I, too, dismounted, advancing unwillingly toward the heap

of debris, where that hollow-eyed skull rested—by chance or design.

Then…

There appeared in the dark eye hollows of the skull (I could not be so preyed upon by illusion even here) an answering fraction of light. My shaking hand was

at my mouth, keeping back a cry of panic to which I refused voice.

The crystal now lifted from its place on my breast, pointing outward, pulling the chain that supported it into a taut line, as if it strained for freedom.

I

had said it would be a guide, now it drew me toward that ancient, time-worn thing of bone.

Unable to control the gryphon, I knelt, my hands going out, in spite of my efforts not to move. I was not going to touch that dry and years-leached bone—I

was not!

The crystal became a ball of sparkling light, so bright I could no longer look

directly at it. While to my ears, or perhaps within my head, came a very faint

sound, like a far-off solemn chanting, such as might mark some ceremony. I wanted to put my hands over my ears and run as far as I could from that skull.

No skull—no! Air curdled about the yellowish bone, took on visible substance, building up a thin and unsubstantial vision of a face, a head. The eyes, the sharply jutting nose—so pointed that it might be likened to a bird's beak—overhanging a small chin, obliquely set eyes… No human face!

There was an urgency in the light-sparked eyes, a demand made upon me—but one I

could not interpret. There had been something lost, which must be found.

There

was danger to be faced—there was—

The wisp of face vanished. While the bone it had built itself upon—I gasped!

That, too, was crumbling into ashy powder. I cried out, "What is it that you would have me do? What do you want?"

The chant of that far-off ritual ceased, the terrible demand faded. Now the englobed gryphon lost its blaze of light, fell to rest again near my heart.

Of

the skull nothing remained.

"It wanted…" I stammered, turning to my companions, but I had no real explanation for them.

Jervon's face was impassive, Elys stared beyond me into that hollow among the rocks from which the skull and the rest had been cleared.

"There was something there!" I was obsessed with what I had seen. But had they

also shared my vision?

"One who dies during some task laid upon him for good or ill," Elys said slowly,

"clings to a shadow of life, unwilling to depart to new roads until that task is

fulfilled. I think that such a shadow clung here. It is now gone—for good or ill."

"But it did not tell me what it wanted!" I found I could accept her words, accept them so completely that now I wished the skull back that I might again demand of whatever shadow was tied to it what I must do and where. For now I bore a burden also—though that might be an illusion only I could perceive.

"There will come a time when you shall know." Elys did not say that as one promises enlightenment to calm a bewildered child, rather as one who is sure of

the truth.

I rose to my feet, my hand moved, as it so often did for reassurance, toward the

gryphon. Then I jerked my fingers away before they could close about the globe.

I wanted to rid myself of the thing! That is, one part of me did, while, deeper

in me, arose an excitement that demanded that I yield to an unknown force, that

I throw aside all those old fears and wariness of my people and go forth—to grasp… as yet I did not know what.

We did not linger long at that strange nesting place but went on. and soon there

came a welcome change in the land. The arid desert gave way to growing things.

An arrow shot by Jervon brought down a creature not unlike the deer of the Dales. Thus we ate fresh meat and were able to drink the water we found in a much more wholesome oasis. Here were the signs of older camps and we believed we

had chanced upon one of the regular rest sites of either scavengers or outlaws.

Since the grazing was good we decided to remain there while Jervon once more went out scouting.

I was certain in my own mind that Kerovan had sheltered among the rocks, also that he had been in the narrow valley earlier. Inwardly I was discouraged.

There

was no trail to be followed through this wilderness and I could neither guess his destination nor direction. The gryphon—no, since its actions with the skull,

even that I distrusted.

Though I tried talking with Elys, her answers were so random that I began to believe she either had thought better of her agreement to aid me, or that the episode of the skull had sent her into deep speculations of her own.

I sat back on my heels to look about me. This rough pasturelike land was normal

to Dale eyes, at least more so than that portion of the Waste we had crossed.

I

remembered tales of the scavengers—that scattered across this country were cities or fortresses so blasted that all that remained were lumps of congealed

metal, which they hacked free to sell. The metal itself was uncanny, for sometimes it exploded when touched with tools, killing those who would master it.

Who were the Old Ones'? What kind of lives had they lived here? That skull, when

it had taken on the semblance of life, had been more avian than human. The dead

had not been in our form entirely—had it been more—or less—than us?

"Who were the Old Ones?" I had not realized that I asked that aloud until Elys,

shaken out of her preoccupation by my voice, answered.

"I think there were many different kinds of them. She who taught me a Wise woman's knowledge once said that they knew too much, tried too many uses of the

Power. That they could change and did change into many forms. You have certainly

heard legends…"

I nodded. Yes—the legends. Some were of monsters against whom our Dale forefathers had fought with fire and sword. Others—taking the seeming of fair women and comely men— enticed the venturesome away, some into permanent exile,

others into visits from which they returned so bemused and bewildered that never

again did they fit into human life, but went wandering, seeking that which remained ever hidden from them until their longing ate them into death.

"The use of Power," Elys continued, "can be the deadliest fate laid upon one.

It

is somehow bred into us, maybe doubly so into them, that the more we know, the

more we must continue to seek. I think that those ancient ones learned, tampered, attempted too much. Their thirst for knowledge became the only mover

in their lives. So it would follow that they might not be bound by any code of

right or wrong—only by their own wills and desires…"

The truth of that I had already seen proven when Rogear had used the force of his will to bend me for a space into a tool— save that my dear lord had followed, to prove himself stronger. Yes, Rogear and my lord's own mother—others—had played with Power, drawing it greedily to them. However, in the end, it had turned upon them, eaten them up. Perhaps to bring upon them their endings.

"Can one use Power and still escape such consequences?" I made that a half-question, a new fear moving in me. Was I already, in my great need to gain

my will with Kerovan, tainted with this hunger for the unknown? What had seemed

to be a straightforward plan of action when I had ridden out of Norsdale was now

confused. I was nibbled upon by doubt, which grew stronger. Was Kerovan—could he

be right? Was it knowledge derived of the Dark and not the Light that would grow

between us if we kept a bond and built upon it? Must I resist what lay in me clamoring for fulfillment?

No! That belief I refused to accept. I remembered again that strange man who had

appeared out of nowhere when my lord had been so beaten down by the Dark, all those months ago. Neevor— he had said that I had the key, that we were fated to

use it together. And for good—surely for good. I must allow no such doubts to creep into my mind.

Jervon returned just before sundown, excited and eager. He reported having found

tracks of three mounts, one he thought ridden, the other two led. "There was a

fourth also," he added.

"Three of the horses are still there grazing free. There are packs also—but no

one camps. I believe that someone met with the traveler—their trails lay close

together."

I was on my feet at once, heading for Bund. "Kerovan—he may have been taken captive!" In my mind churned the many dangers that could have befallen him.

"I do not think so. There is no sign of any attack. The horses are of the desert

breed the scavengers usually use and they are peaceful. It is a good situation

for a camp." Now he looked to Elys. "Also there have been safeguards placed."

She raised her eyebrows. "Of what nature?" she demanded sharply.

"None of a kind I have seen before. There are four peeled wands, each set upright in the earth at the outer limits of a well-seized grazing field. One, to

the north, has fastened to it a tuft of horse hair. That to the south bears a patch of snowcat fur. To the east is one with an eagle feather, to the west one

bearing boar bristles. I did not touch any. However, they manifestly have a purpose and the horses do not stray past them."

I glanced at Elys for an explanation. She looked as baffled as I felt.

"Where did he go? The man of that camp—it is Kerovan!" I did not know why I was

so sure, perhaps mainly because I wanted to be.

"There are hoofprints—leading on westward into a wood. I would have followed but

Agran here"—he drew his hand down the neck of the horse he bestrode—"would not

approach it. He was as wild with fear as if a red bear reared in the way reaching for him. It is plain that was forbidden territory and Agran recognized

it."

"But if the horses will not follow—then we can go afoot," I persisted.

Jervon regarded me gravely. "Lady, I would not try to enter that place whether

astride or on my own two feet. It warns one off, I believe that some power rules

there. We can but camp and wait at that place—to dare more is to achieve nothing."

I refused to believe him—then. We did ride on to that strangely marked camp and

saw the horses as placidly grazing as if they were in a fenced field, never venturing beyond those wands. I paid only passing attention to those; instead I

set Bural on the way to the wood.

She shied violently, near tossing me from the saddle. Twice we fought a battle

of wills until I was forced to admit that I could not make the mare venture near

the shadows of the trees.

My companions had gone their own way, establishing camp in the same hollow where

the vanished traveler had left piled saddle and gear. Jervon tried the experiment of turning our own beasts into the square with the three desert horses and they appeared also to respect the wand barrier so that they need not

be put on grazing ropes.

Only I was far too impatient to remain in camp awaiting a return that might or

might not come. Having proven I could not ride into the wood, I was determined

to attempt it on foot, with the turf torn by hoof marks for my guide.

My start was brisk enough, and neither Elys nor Jervon attempted to argue me out

of it. It was not until I was some distance along my chosen path (so was I strengthened in stubborn determination) that I realized I could not move fast,

nor could I touch any of those hoofprints with my boots. Rather, without any volition, I was zigzaging back and forth just to avoid that.

An uneasiness was growing in me for which I could not account. I persevered but

against a growing sense of danger, of opposition, so that my pace grew slower and slower, in spite of my will to push on.

It was not that I was fronted by any visible wall forbidding entrance to the wood. No, rather my energy was steadily sapped, my will itself weakened with every step I fought to gain. I decided that I was not repelled by fear itself,

rather a growing awareness that I was intruding rashly, rudely, on private ground, that I ventured where I had no right to go without invitation.

Even though I had come near under the outstretched branches of one of the tall

trees, I realized that my hope of traveling farther was done. This was forbidden

ground. Reluctantly I turned back, faced toward camp. Then it was as if a strong

force swept me up, a storm of wind (though not a leaf rustled, none of the tall

grass rippled) pushed me away, heavy at my back. I had dared to approach a guarded refuge—the wood was a sanctuary—but not one tor those of my kind.

Kerovan

AS I SAT WITH WHAT I HOPED WAS AN APPEARANCE OF EASE, THE SUN shining on that band of metal, I was certain the stranger's oddly set eyes widened. For a moment, perhaps two breaths, his gaze held on that. Then he dropped his reins in

turn, the shadow steed standing quiet, all four feet planted rock fast, as its

rider's hands arose in an answering gesture of peace. At least in this much he

followed Dale custom.

Cautiously, half fearing that my horses might come to life and bolt, I slipped

from the saddle. None of the three moved as I watched them warily before advancing through the tall grass toward the cat-crowned man.

He waited until I was a sword's length away before he spoke— soft slurred words

with a lilting cadence. He might have been reciting some formula. I shook my head, then replied in Dak speech:

"Greeting to a sharer of the road; may the—" I hesitated now. I could not wish

him Flame Blessing—such words might be an insult to one who worshiped other powers. Nor could I, in all honestly, call upon the Flame myself, since I was marked as one with no right to the belief of true men.

He frowned. For the fist time there was a shadow of expression on his impassive

face. Had a faint tinge of surprise also crossed it for an .instant? When he spoke again he used Dale speech, accented, but clear.

"Where ride you, man?" He made the word "man" sound like a title of disrepute.

"In search of—" I hesitated again. To inform the first corner of my reason for

riding the Waste was folly.

"In search of—" he prompted. Now it was true he wore an expression and it was grim. "Old treasure, of scrap heaps to burrow in, scavenger?"

His hands dropped, not to seize sword as I had first thought, rather to gather

up reins. I knew he was preparing to ride on where my mounts would not follow.

At that moment I knew fear. For I had a strong feeling if he went I would not again see him or discover more of his kind, while it could well be he represented just those I had been sent to find.

"I am not a hunter of old metal—a scavenger." I hastened to say. "I ride with a

message."

"What message and to be given to whom?" He was plainly impatient.

"The message I do know—but to whom it is to be delivered— of that I am not sure."

"Riddles!" he snapped scornfully.

"Not riddle but ignorance. I am out of the Dales where there has been war for two years and more…"

He had been on the point of turning his horse, now he stayed that movement.

"War." Again there was scorn in his tone. "One petty lord man against his fellow, quarreling over half a hillside of near-barren land."

His contempt for the Dalesmen was open. I half agreed inwardly that he was right. That was all that war had been for years—hot family feuds in which men died, to be sure, but there was no wide ravening of the countryside.

"This is true war," I made haste to explain. "Invaders from overseas such as we

have not seen before, using new and terrible weapons." There was no need, I decided, for me to explain that most of those weapons had been by now rendered

impotent through some lack we did not understand. "All the coast they hold and

now they sweep farther inland. Always they bring reinforcements. We die and there are few to fill our empty saddles, or even horses to wear those saddles."

He leaned a little forward, his eyes narrowed. By some trick of the light they

yet showed, within their depths, tiny glints of flame such as I had seen earlier

in the cat eyes of his helm crest.

"So—why do you then come to the Waste—you in warrior mail? Do you run?"

Temper unleashed or leashed I had long ago learned to use as a weapon. I did not

need to show any inner fire in answer to his taunt upon this occasion.

"I bring a message, as I have said." I decided there was only one way I might achieve my purpose after all—and that was with the truth. "We have taken prisoners and they have talked. Their story is that what they seek is a source

of power, and it lies to the west. We think that they believe this.

Therefore,

it is not our Dales that is their final goal but perhaps—this— ' I made a gesture to include the meadow in which we stood. Once more the wristlet blazed.

"Your land—and perhaps those you name kin."

He made a sound deep in his throat, a snarl such as a cat might voice. Now he pointed to my wristlet.

"Where got you that?" he demanded.

"By chance—I found it in a stream in the Dales."

He smiled, the lift of his lip resembling a cat baring fangs— though the teeth

he displayed were no different than my own.

"And where got you those?" This time he pointed to my hooves.

I answered steadily enough.

"My birthright—or birth curse. I have heard it said both ways in my time."

Again those narrowed eyes studied me closely. When he spoke some of the hardness

was gone from his voice.

"I think you may have found those who will listen to your message—or may find them after I take .council. Your animals" —he glanced disdainfully at the fear-struck desert horses—"cannot follow our trails. Their breed would die of terror were one of my people to approach them closely. I go now to my pack lord.

If he wishes to see you I shall return—Man of the Dales."

He pointed now to the north.

"There is water there and good forage. If you wish—camp and wait." He had turned

his mount, now he looked back over his shoulder.

"I am Herrel."

I was startled. It is one of the strong beliefs of my people, who know the Power

only slightly, that to give one's name to a stranger is a dangerous thing—since

a man's name is an important part of himself and he can be influenced through it. Still this stranger had just, by that standard, shown great trust in me.

I

answered as quickly.

"I am Kerovan." To that I added no title or lordship, for such were mine no longer.

He sketched a salute with his free hand, then rode without looking back again,

while I followed his advice in leading my now-more-biddable mounts on toward that campsite he had indicated.

I did not have to wait long. Herrel returned and with him another like him, save

that his helm crest was an eagle with half unfurled wings, his saddle cloth a netting into which feathers had been woven. He sat his horse a little aloof while Herrel told me that I was bidden to speak with their lord. The second rider busied himself by driving four wands well into the ground, each being topped with a tuft of fur or feathers. Herrel, indicating them, told me that they would keep my mounts within bounds as well as any fence, but that I must go

afoot.

So it came that I paced as might a captive between the two of them into the dusk

of that dark wood. I did not allow my hand to brush near my sheathed sword.

From

now on I must be doubly wary, though I did not sense from these two, as I always

had in Imgry's camp, the waves of hatred that my appearance fired in the Dalesmen.

Once within the first screen of trees, the way was not hard going. In fact there

was a path or narrow road, wide enough for only one horseman, so deep-trodden one might believe it was a highway used through many years. To my advantage, my

hooves were no longer constricted by the boots I had worn so many years in concealment. In fact I was glad to stretch my legs by this tramp. The many scents of the forest were heady. I drew deep breaths, and I discovered that I was growing lighter of heart and less wearied than I had been since I entered the Waste.

What did begin to impress me was that I saw no other life save the three of us

who moved silently, for the hooves of the horses awakened only the slightest of

sounds. No bird hopped on any branch, nor did I spy, along the outer edges of the trail, any beast's prints. The greenery was very dark nor had I elsewhere seen such trees of so huge circumference of bole. Their bark was black and deeply ridged.

The path we followed wove a meandering way, turning often to avoid such an obstruction as one of those trunks.

How long we traveled I had no way of knowing. My two escorts held their curiously dappled steeds to a walk, while around us the silence grew, the light

became more and more dusky. Twice we passed stones, set upright, no normal outcrop-pings, for they had been wrought upon by man.

The tops of each of them had been carved with diabolical skill—I say diabolical

for the creatures sculpture had evoked out of the rock were grim. One was a head, or perhaps better a skull, with a huge beak looming out to threaten any passerby. That bill was also a fraction agape as if about to seize on the unwary. There was something of a bird about it, also a bit of a long-snouted reptile. The holes, which had been left to represent eyes, had insets, so deep

within I could not see whether they were gems or not (though how, in the absence

of sunlight, any gleam could have been awakened from such was a mystery). I only

know that red pits of utter savagery regarded me.

Neither of my companions so much as turned an eye in the direction of that looming guardian. Nor did they, either, regard the second such we passed.

Where

the first had been beaked or snouted, this was a life-size death's head possessing close kinship to a skull of my own race. The thing had been more graphically and disgustingly carved as if far gone in decay, stretches of rotting skin portrayed across cheekbones and chin, a nose half sloughed away.

Once more there were eyes to watch, these yellow.

I made no comment as we passed these posts. For I was determined not to allow my

companions to believe I found anything strange in this wood. To my own pride I

owed that much, so I clung to an outward show of self-possession as I would to a

battle shield.

We had left the skull post at least five turns of the path behind when Herrel leaned forward to sweep out an arm. As if he had so loosed the latch of a door a

mass of branches lifted, swung to one side, to allow us out into the full light

of day once again.

The wood still stretched like encircling arms on either side, and, by a distant

mark across the horizon, formed another barrier there. However, directly ahead

lay a section of land as wide as any Dale holding I had seen. Planted fields were guarded by low stone walls from pastures in which horses, such as Herrel and his fellow rode, grazed. There was the blue sheen of a pond or small lake farther west. Near that stood the first building that was not a long-abandoned

ruin that I had ever seen in the Waste.

Stone formed the walls of the first story, but, rising above that, logs were set

in tight company. The strangest thing was that these logs were apparently not dead and seasoned wood. Rather branches jutted here and there and those bore living leaves. The branches were thickest near the top of the walls, and spread

wide as if they so formed the roof.

From the point where we had issued out of the wood, running directly toward the

building, was a continuation of the forest path. Here in the open, however, the

way was much wider. Perhaps four horsemen could have ridden it abreast.

He who had followed me on the trail did not urge his mount forward and we proceeded by the same line of march as we had kept under the trees, save that Herrel slowed a fraction to allow me to pace beside him. For the first time since we left my camp he spoke:

"The lodge." He gestured to the building.

Any Dale keep whose lord abode within its wall would have flown his banner from

the highest point. None such flapped here. Rather in a line flanking the front

of that half-alive structure, there was planted in the earth a series of poles,

all perhaps twice my height. From the top of each fluttered a narrow ribbon of

color. The closer we drew the better able I was to recognize the devices these

bore. Whereas the lords of High Hallack used for their heraldic crests either some fanciful monster, or an object suggesting a deed of valor performed by some

ancestor, these carried very detailed pictures of well-known animals or birds.

A boar, a rearing stallion, an eagle, a mountain cat, a snouted and armored lurker of the river—there were a full twenty banners and not two alike. Save for

my escort, however, there were no signs of life except four men, stripped to breeches and boots, at labor in the fields. Not one of them raised his eyes from

his task to mark our passing.

Herrel swung out of his saddle and dropped the reins of his horse. The animal stood as if tethered.

"Wait!" He flung that single word in my direction, then passed beneath the outgrowing, bushy leaves of the building to push in a massive door. He who had

been my other guide or guard, swung his own mount around and rode off. Nor did

he look back.

I studied the strangeness of the keep for want of any better occupation.

There

were windows set on either side of the door on the lower floor. Each was covered

by a fine latticework of branches perhaps as thick as my thumb. However, they were of worked wood, showing no leaves or twiglets.

My attention was drawn to a stirring among the leaves above, certainly not induced by any wind's rustle, for not the slightest breeze blew. I caught sight

here and there of a small head—then two or three more—that could be viewed only

for a moment, disappearing again before I had real sight of them. I thought though they were not of any species of animal or reptile I knew—and they were not birds.

They left an impression of a long, sharply pointed snout, ringed by fangs, exposed as if the creature possessed no concealing lips. Above that were the eyes, bright, inquisitive, knowing… Yes, knowing.

Almost the whole of the brush wall facing me was a-shake now. Numbers of the creatures, small as they were, must be gathering, right above the door. I had a

sudden hint of what might happen should an intruder attempt entrance there against the will or orders given to such sentinels, guards, or whatever they might be.

As abruptly as he had disappeared, Herrel returned, the door left open behind him. He gestured for me to come. Nor did he glance above to where boughs creaked

under unseen weight. The watchers remained at their posts, as, trying not to show any interest in them, I passed under that overhang and came into the hall

of these Waste riders.

I had expected to walk into gloom, for those tightly latticed windows suggested

that they admitted very little light. Instead I discovered a green glow, while

at intervals along the stone walls there were baskets of metal—not the torch rings of the Daleland. In each of these rested a clutch of balls about the size

of an egg. all of which glowed to give fair lighting.

The hall itself was enough like that of a keep to make me feel that these horsemen lived a life not too different from what I had always known.

Directly facing me stood the high table. However, this did not have just three

or four chairs of honor. Instead there were twenty, each with a high-carved back, none set above its fellows. There was no second table for servants of the

household, only that one board.

A wide hearth took up nearly a third of the far wall, cavernous enough to hold

logs that must be nearly the size of those forest giants we had passed among.

Along the other wall, which was broken by the door, were bunks on which were piled cloaks and coverings made of the cured skins of animals. A chest stood beneath each sleeping place.

There were no wall tapestries, no carved panels or screens. However, on the expanse of stone against which the high table was situated, a star was outlined

in red-brown, the color reminding one unpleasantly of dried blood. The center of

that was a mass of runes and symbols for which I hurriedly averted my gaze.

For

it seemed to me, that, when one viewed it directly, they came to life, wriggled,

coiled, moved as might headless serpents in their death throes. I glanced to the

band on my wrist. Its blue sheen neither waxed nor waned. Perhaps that meant that for me (at least now) there was no danger, no Power of the Dark here.

I was given little time to look about, for a man, seated in the chair directly

before the center of that wall star, moved. He had sat so utterly motionless that now he startled me as he leaned forward. Both elbows were planted on the table, his forearms outstretched along the surface of the board. He presented the appearance of one who had no reason to try to impress a visitor, he being who and what he was.

He did not wear mail, or even a jerkin, his chest and shoulders being as bare as

those of the field laborers. Though he was seated he gave the feeling of height

and strength—the wiry strength of a good swordsman. A sword did lie there, lengthwise on the table, both of his hands resting upon its scabbard.

The scabbard was leather, horsehide, while the pommel of the weapon was in the

form of a rearing stallion, such as I had seen depicted on one of the banners without. To his right a helm also rested, its crest the same design, save larger

and in more detail.

He was dark-haired, and there was a likeness between him and Herrel, which revealed, I decided, some kinship—if not of close blood, then of race. It was difficult to judge his age, though I believed him older than my guide. There was

about him such an air of inborn command and practiced Power as would reduce Imgry's bearing to that of a fumbling recruit new come to camp. Whatever this warrior might be otherwise, he was a long-time leader and user of Power.

I do not know whether he was used to staring others out of countenance at first

meeting, but the look he turned on me was a heady mixture of contempt, a very faint curiosity, and much personal assurance.

Little by little I was learning how to deal with the unknown. Now I left it to

him to break the silence. This might just be a duel of wills set to test me, he

who spoke first forfeiting an undefined advantage. How long we faced each other

so I do not know. Then to my surprise (which I fought not to show), he flung back his head and gave a laugh carrying a hint of a horse's neigh.

"So there is sturdy metal in you, hill-hugger, after all."

I shook my head. "Lord"—I granted him the courtesy title, though I did not know

his rank—"I speak for certain of the Dalesmen, yes, but if you look you shall perceive I am not wholly hill-hugger." I advanced one of my hooves a fraction.

If my half-blood should prove a barrier here as it was in the Dales, that must

be my first discovery.

He had very level black brows, straight and fine of hair. They now drew together

in a frown. When he spoke it was as if a faint, far-off ring of a stallion's battle scream hung behind his words.

"None of us may be what we seem." There was bitterness in that.

Then it happened. The air thickened, wrapping him in mist. When that cleared, it

was pulled away by force, as if blown by the great arched nostrils of a horse.

For there was no longer any man in the chair. Rather a war stallion, such as any

fighting man may see but once in a lifetime, planted forehooves on the board, still nudging the sword. Its head, crowned by a wild mane, was lowered until it

near overreached the far edge of the table in my direction. White teeth showed

as it voiced the scream of a fighter.

I gave no ground; afterwards that memory sustained me. The thing was no hallucination, of that I was sure. Also the red fury in its eyes might signal a

death warning. In that moment, in spite of my daze, I understood. I fronted a shapechanger—one who could at will, or in the heat of some emotion, assume animal form. Not that of any ordinary beast, no, this was a manifestation of the

Were—one of the most dreaded of our ancient legends.

There was a deadly snarl to my right. I dared to turn my head a fraction.

Where

Herrel had stood a moment earlier, there crouched a huge snow cat—tail lashing,

fangs displayed, burning eyes on me as its muzzle wrinkled farther and farther

back.

Then—

A man again sat at the table fondling the sword. I did not need another glance

to assure myself that the cat had also disappeared.

"I am Hyron," the man announced in a flat voice as if he had played a game that

no longer amused him. There was a weariness in his tone also. He might have been

very tired at the rise of each sun, the coming of every night. "We are the Wereriders. And you—what are you? Who are you? What do the hill-huggers want of

us that they dare send a messenger?"

"I am Kerovan." Once more I made no claim of lordship or rank. "I was sent because I am what I am—a half-blood. Therefore, there were those who believed that you might give me better attention."

"A half-blood—one they hold in low esteem. And so they must hold us also—thus why would they wish a pact with us?"

"Lord Imgry has a saying to fit the need," I returned steadily. This horseman's

taunts would awake no visible anger in me. "He has said that a common enemy makes allies."

"A common enemy, eh?" Lord Hyron's right hand had closed about the hilt of his

sword. He played with the blade, drawing it forth from its sheath a fraction, snapping it back again sharply. "We have seen no such enemy."

"You may, my lord. And, if things continue to go so ill in the Dales, sooner than you think." With as few words as possible and as simply as I

could I told him of what we suspected to be the eventual purpose of the invaders.

"A treasure—a Power…" He tossed his head with an equine gesture. "Poor fools and

dolts. If these invaders found any such they would rue it bitterly in the end.

Whoever dispatched them on such an errand is well disordered in what wits they

possess. The Waste itself would fight with us."

I felt Herrel stir rather than saw him move. His lord's gaze shifted to him.

The

cat-helmed warrior said nothing. All I perceived was that he and his leader locked gazes, though I gained the impression that between them communication passed.

There was a need, I sensed, not to speculate too far concerning the talents of

the Weres. They were not of the kind to take kindly to any who pried into their

ways. But that this period of silence was important I was sure.

Nor was I too surprised when there appeared from behind us several other men, drawing near to Herrel and me as if they had obeyed some unheard summons to council.

A loud click ended that period of silence, as emphatic a sound as if the fist of

a man had come smashing down. Hyron had given a final slam to the sword, smashing it back into the scabbard with full force.

He arose, not as a threatening stallion, but in man guise. Yet still he leaned

across the board even as the stallion had done.

"There is much to be thought on," he said. His frown had returned full force.

Also there was a quirk to his lips as if he tasted something sour, perhaps his

own words. "There is nothing in the Dales for which we choose to fight. On the

other hand"—he hesitated as if turning some thought over several times to examine it the better—"there was once a geas laid—and perhaps that has brought

us to this meeting. If we consult and discover that we indeed have a common enemy—that your purpose can answer ours—" He broke off with a shrug. What he said had no real commitment, but I guessed I would get no better answer. Then he

asked a question.

"Whom did you really seek when you came so boldly into the Waste, Kinsman-by-half?"

"Whoever there might be who would listen. Lord."

Now he raised a forefinger to scratch along the line of his beardless jaw.

"You are forthright enough," he commented. From his tone could not judge whether

he thought me a fool for using the truth "That being so—there are others here who might be interested in your warning." He smiled and I heard muffled sounds

from those about me as if they shared his amusement. Did he want in to beg him

for directions to those "others"? Somehow I believe that if I did that I would

lose any advantage I had held in this interview.

"This you may tell your Lord—or he whose scheme brought you to us—" He folded his arms across his chest, once more tossed his head so that the crest of his hair fell in a lock over his forehead. "We shall certainly consider all he has

said. If we make a decision in his favor, he shall hear so from us. There will

be a price for our services, of course. We must have time to think of that.

Years ago we once sold our swords and sold then well. Those who bought had no reason to claim they did no receive full measure. If we choose to bargain again,

your Dalesmen may find us worth any price we ask."

"That price being?" I mistrusted this horse lord—not because I thought him a follower of the Dark, for I knew he was not. Still, legends say that there were

those among the Old Ones who were neither good nor evil, but whose standards of

right and wrong are not our measures.

"In due time and to your lord's own face shall we state that,' he countered.

"Also, if you wish to gather an army you need other allies." He suddenly pointed

to my hooves.

"Why not," he asked, "seek those with whom you can claim kin?"

I knew that I dare not show ignorance now, that to do so would lessen me in their sight. My mother's clan came from the northernmost Dales—there must lie the mixture that had made me what I was. So if I did have kin there I would find

such.

I managed a shrug. "We have no maps of the Waste, Lord. I took the westward hills for my guide—that brought me here. Now I shall ride north."

"North." Lord Hyron repeated. Then it was his turn to shrug "The choice is yours. This is not an easy land, none does ride or walk here without due caution."

"So I have already discovered. Lord Hyron. My first meeting with a Waste dweller

was his body—"

"That being?" He asked it idly, as if it did not matter.

Just because he would so dismiss my gruesome find, I described the mauled thing

I had buried and was only halfway through my story when I felt the whole atmosphere about me change. It was as if I had brought portentous tidings without being aware of it.

"Thas!" It was a name, a word I did not know, and it exploded with force from Herrel. The indifference of Lord Hyron had vanished in the same instant.

Joisan

ELYS STOOD ON A SMALL RISE FACING THE FOREST LAND. SHE WAS frowning and the hands that hung by her sides twitched slightly. I thought that she was disturbed, that she felt some need for action, yet she was not sure what.

Jervon

had brought the packs and our saddles close to the mark of a recent fire and was

again off collecting wood. A small pile of branches lay at Elys's feet also but

she made no move to pick them up again. I paused beside her, turned also to face

that line of trees that was so well protected against any invasion. Now that I

regarded them more intently I could see that the leaves were darker green than

those I had known in the Dales and they grew very thickly together.

"There are no birds." Elys said abruptly.

For a moment I was at a loss. Then, thinking back, I could not remember having

sighted, since we left the Dales, any wing-borne life. The Waste was indeed a barren land. Still—why Elys should now be seeking sight of birds puzzled me.

"In such a wood—yes, there should be birds," she repeated; her frown grew heavier.

"But—I do not remember seeing any since we came out of the Dales."

She gave an impatient shake of the head. "Perhaps over the desert—no—there would

be few to wing there. But this is a wood, a place to harbor them well. There should be birds!" She spoke emphatically, her attitude one of foreboding.

Then

she glanced at me.

"You did not enter there after all."

"Jervon was right—there was a barrier. As if a keep door was closed and no visitors welcomed."

Her frown lightened a fraction. My answer might have supplied a pan answer to her puzzle.

"There is a keep of sorts, I believe, in that wood. If that be so—then the land

is closed, save when those who hold it wish otherwise. It will open to their desire only."

I did not like the idea her words conjured in my mind. "But"—I spoke my thought

aloud, trying to reassure myself, perhaps have Elys agree with some hope or comfort—"I cannot be sure that it was Kerovan who camped here, who was enticed

within there…" Even as I spoke that denial I knew that any hope of it being so

was folly.

"Enticed…" Elys repeated thoughtfully. "No. If he entered there he did so willingly. These are not of the ones who entice, they have no need to do so.

They are—strong—"

"What do you know or guess?" I demanded eagerly. "Have you then found some trace—some clue…"

"I only feel," she replied. "There is Power there, but I cannot say with any truth what it is. There is no sense of ill, but neither is there any of a force

that is friendly, or beneficial. It is just—Power." She made a small gesture of

bafflement with one of her hands. "But I wish that there were birds."

"Why?" I still could not understand her preoccupation with them. Nor why the presence—or absence—of birds might be so important.

"Because"—again she sketched that gesture of helplessness— "they would be here

if all was well, judged by our own world. Without them that wood must be very silent, a secret place—too secret…"

Jervon called and we turned toward the camp. But she had wrought upon my imagination. As I went I found myself straining to hear a bird call—one of those

things I had taken so for granted in the world I had always known that I had not

been aware of such until it was missing.

Back in the campsite I looked longingly at those other saddle bags, which had been left behind by the missing traveler. If I could only rummage through them,

perhaps so discover for certain that they were Kerovan's. Yet I could not bring

myself to do that. I was sure, far too sure, that this was his camp—but a small

hint of hope did remain battling within me and I feared to quench it and allow

the dark suspicions that prowled among my thoughts entirely free.

As I sat beside the fire Jervon had kindled I still strained to listen, hoping

for the comfort of the usual noises of the world. Even those made by the grazing

horses, the thud of their hooves as they moved about was a reassurance. There was also the crackling of the fire…

Elys had been far too right. That wood was ominously silent. Not a leaf stirred,

no branch swayed. The growth was rooted like a dark green trap, set to swallow

up a reckless venturer at its own time and in its own way. Behind it, now cutting off the setting sun, bulked that dark line of heights. Perhaps they stood guard on the very end of the world. One could believe any weird fancy here.

I was too restless to sit still for long. Twice I sought the small rise where I

had found Elys, ever watching the wood. Only the horses moved within the oddly

marked square of pasture. When I looked back over my shoulder I saw that Jervon

had taken out a whetstone, was using it on his sword blade, though he continually glanced up and around with a keen measuring look such as a scout would use in unknown and perhaps dangerous territory.

Elys remained by the fire. Her back was straight, her head up, but I could see

even from my perch that her eyes were closed, and still she had the attitude of

one listening intensely. It was said that the Wisewomen at times were able to detach a part of their inner sense, send it questing in search of what could not

be seen, felt, or heard—by the body.

Where was Kerovan? Who had he gone to deal with inside that silent wood? Why had

he been welcomed within and I refused entrance? Had he arranged a meeting with

one who did sentry duty there?

I was so impatient for some news of him that I could have raged in my frustration. The sun was gone, the sky was beginning to dim—though bright colors

still spanned the sky with broad bands of brilliant hue.

Twilight always came to the Waste as a time of brooding evil, or so I had found

it in the past. The shadows of these trees lengthened across the open meadow, crept and crawled toward us. Even as there had been in that thick mist that enclosed the ruin where I had met with my present companions, so here now grew

the feeling that something—or things—used those shadows for sinister purposes,

and that a threat of peril hung here.

Yet the last thing I could have done—a thing I could not force myself to think

of doing—was to get to horse and ride away. Slowly, with heavy feet and a feeling of growing chill within me, I left the rise to return to the fireside.

As I went I shook my head against those irrational fears—but I was not able to

so rid my mind's sensing of that brooding, watching something…

Jervon had put aside his stone, sheathed his sword. The world was all the more

quiet when the scraping of his whetstone ceased. He came to Elys, dropped on his

knees behind her. His hands went out to rest, one on each of her shoulders.

I saw her quiver at his touch, as if he had drawn her back out of some trance.

Her eyes opened, yet she did not turn her head toward him.

"There is trouble?" he asked softly. I was on my feet again, looking at once to

the wood.

Her eyes, though they now opened, remained blank. She did not focus on anything

before her. At last one of her hands arose to close about his where it lay on her right shoulder. Again she shivered.

"If I only knew more." Her cry held passion, even a note of despair. "Yes, there

is something—something wrong—wrong— or else so different from us that there is

no understanding it!"

Startled, I wheeled to look at that wood, for I thought only of it. Was Kerovan

returning, perhaps accompanied by whoever dwelt here? But surely Kerovan, for all that strangeness in him since he had summoned Power (in spite of himself when he fronted Rogear and the rest), was not so unhuman as to be what Elys apparently now sensed.

"Who comes from the wood?" I demanded of her, all my fears aroused.

"Not the wood." There was still enough of the lingering after-sunset light to see clearly what she did. She pulled out of Jervon's hold, set both hands palm

down on the earth where there was a patch bare of grass, leaving only the naked

soil. There she leaned forward, her weight upon her arms and hands, while there

was very strong about her that air of listening, of a need for concentration.

So tense she was that I found myself also kneeling, watching her hands against

the earth as if one could expect a sudden upheaval of the soil there.

"Under"—she spoke so softly that I barely caught her whisper— "under . .•." I was sure I saw her hands whiten across the knuckles as if she exerted her full

strength to hold down a force under the ground that was struggling with a matching effort to win free.

Then she threw herself backward and away, scrambled to her knees, seizing upon

Jervon's arm to drag him with her.

"Up—and back!" That was no half-whisper, rather close to a shout of warning.

I also scrambled backwards, at the same time heard a maddened squealing from the

horses. They were racing, their eyes wild, kicking out at each other, milling around within that square marked by the wands.

While the ground—! The ground itself was trembling, shaking and rolling under my

feet, the earth shifting as if it were as light and fluid as water, Jervon had

drawn steel, so had Elys. Swords ready, the two crowded back from the spot where

they had been a moment earlier.

The flames of the fire flared as wildly as the horses moved, spitting sparks into the air while the brands upon which they fed shitted this way and that.

I saw the earth rise like a wave, hurtling outward, striving, it would seem, to

sweep us from our feet. Jervon and Elys were on one side of that surge, I on the

other. I could not keep my balance as the wave sent me wavering from side to side. Now there was a second peril. Between me and my companions the soil spun

around and around like batter stirred by a giant spoon. As it so spun the circle

of that whirlpool reached farther and farther out gulping down first the fire,

then the unknown's saddlebags, then one of the poles—that with the tuft of grey-white fur—breaking so the unseen barrier that had confined the horses.

It was then I turned and ran, but not quick or far enough. One of the horses had

found the opening and raced straight at me. I threw myself to one side, toppled

and fell. The earth curled about me in an instant, trapping my legs, flowing waist high, engulfing my flailing arms. I sank as into quicksand, soil filling

the mouth I opened to scream, forcing itself into eyes I tried to blink shut.

I

had but a single half-conscious moment to draw a deep breath and try to hold it,

as the ground took me down into darkness.

Choking, I fought again for air. I could not move and my fear was such that I cannot now remember much of what followed, mercifully perhaps. Then—I could once

more breathe freely! My smarting eyes teared, striving to clear themselves of the earth clotted on my lashes. I could see nothing but deep dark—and a sharp fear lashed at me—was I blind!

No—it was not completely dark. There was a glow—very faint—against my breast.

I

tried to raise my arms to brush away the burden holding me flat on my back and

discovered that, twist and struggle though I might, my wrists and ankles were secured in some fashion.

However, those welling tears had cleared my eyes enough so that, with the aid of

the faint glow, I discovered I was no longer encased in the earth. Rather I lay

in an open space—though plainly I was still a prisoner.

The glow—with a great effort I raised my head and saw that it spread from the globe of the gryphon, which nursed a small core of faded radiance.

"Elys! Jervon!" I spat out earth and called. My only answer was a dull echo.

Once more I fought against whatever held me, and, by twisting my hands as hard

as I could, I became aware that each wrist was ringed by bonds to keep me firmly

captive.

Captive. Then that action of the earth, which had been in force to engulf our camp, was a trap! And any trap in the Waste meant—

I fought the fear that followed like a sword thrust of ice cold. The Waste harbored life we could not even begin to imagine— what had taken me?

For some moments I lost control, flopping about as best I might, striving in sheer terror to tear apart what held me. My wrists burned from the chafing of the loops about them, earth cascaded from me in powdery puffs, until I began to

cough and strangle, and so was forced to lie quiet.

Then I became aware of a noisome odor. Such was not natural to any earth I knew.

It was the stench of some beast's unclean den, of old decay and death. I gagged

and fought sickness rising sourly in my throat.

Beast… den… More fear awoke from such scattered thoughts to nip at me. But beasts do not bind their captives. This was the Waste—said that other, the fear

itself—anything may happen here.

Gaining such control as I could summon, I once more called aloud the names of my

companions. This time, through the echo, came another sound—something brushed against the side of a narrow way—a scraping. I gulped, and in spite of my efforts to master my growing terror (for in my mind formed the picture of a giant scaled thing crawling through the dark), I closed my eyes. But I could not

close my ears—or my nose.

There was other life here now—rustling. The odor was such to make me gasp and choke as I had when the soil had closed on me. I felt a tugging at my wrists, my

ankles. There were hands (or were they paws?) fumbling about my body. I was firmly grasped by a number of such—what, I dared not open my eyes and try to see.

They raised me. Then I was being carried through a passage so narrow that at times my body brushed walls on both sides, continually bringing a rain of dust

and clods down upon me. While that terrible foul odor never ceased to assault my

nose.

I think that at least once I lost consciousness entirely and perhaps that may have lasted for some time. Then I was dropped with force enough to awaken pain

from many bruises—and left to myself. I became dully aware that now there were

no longer bonds to hold me.

Slowly I opened my eyes. The foul smell was still strong. Only the rustling had

ceased, nor did I sense any of my captors close by.

It was still dark, a thick dark, broken only by the gleam of the gryphon. I had

lost my helm, my hair had fallen about my shoulders and was matted with earth,

sour smelling and sticky. I moved my hands cautiously, half expecting to be rushed by those whose prisoner I was. My sword was also gone, as was my belt knife and dart gun. Apparently my captors recognized the threat those weapons offered and had good reasons to be wary. I still wore my mail and the rest of my

clothing was intact.

Wincing at the pain of my many bruises, I levered myself up, moving with great

wariness since I could not tell how large was the place in which I lay. I half

feared I might strike my uncovered head against a roof.

As I sat so, my hands out on either side to support me, turning my head very slowly to peer fruitlessly into the dark, I gained the impression that, far from

now being in a tunnel such as the one I had earlier been dragged through, I was

in a hollow of some size, perhaps a cavern.

I continued to listen and so became aware of a sound, which my still-dulled senses finally identified as the drip of water. The moment I thought of water my

dust-filled throat became a torment. I did not attempt to get farther up than on

my hands and knees. In fact even that much effort made my head whirl like the churning earth that had brought me here. So I crawled a little at a time, seeking the source of the sound.

It was mainly by a stroke of fortune that I found it, since the glow of the gryphon was so faint and I could not even be sure I was heading in the right direction. One hand, edging forward for the next advance to my painful journey,

plunged down in liquid so cold it brought a sharp gasp from me.

The gryphon, dangling forward, showed the dim outlines of a small basin or hollow, perhaps worn so by ages of such dripping. The drops themselves fell from

somewhere overhead to splash into a catch pool, which I could have covered with

my lost cloak.

I drank, splashed water on my dust-covered face, drank again, a cupped palmful

at a time. The water was as cold as if drained from some unreasonable block of

ice. But, as it flowed down my parched throat, it brought with it a return of my

courage.

When I had drunk my fill, I felt strong enough to stand, balancing myself with

feet slightly apart and hands outspread at my sides. Once on my feet, I stood listening with all my might, for I could not rid myself of the idea that whoever

had dragged me here might well still have me under observation and any move on

my part would provoke an attack.

There was nothing to be heard but the constant drip of the water. At last I took

the globe in one hand and tried to use it as a torch. But the dim light showed

me nothing. I felt wary of advancing blindly into the unknown. Yet to remain where I was solved nothing.

It was plain I needed some way to locate the spring again after I was through exploring. Now I considered my clothing as an answer to that. Beneath my mail shirt was a quilted leather jerkin, under that a linen chemise, all the protection I had against the rub of, the link-mail. I fumbled with the lashing

of my protective shirt, stopping every second or so to listen. Then I dropped the quilted jerkin on top of my body armor, skinning off, last of all, the linen.

Once more I donned leather and mail, then considered the linen. It was stout stuff, well and tightly woven, made to resist hard wear.

Had I been left my knife I might have had an easier piece of work, but I had to

use the edge of my belt buckle, even tug at the fabric with my teeth, before I

could start a tear. Then there was a battle to make a second slit, a third.

Working at this so determinedly was settling for my nerves. At least I was doing

something that was for my own help. Finally I had a ragged coil of frayed cloth,

tied into a line.

One end of this I made fast with the tightest knot I could fashion to a sharp stone that helped to form part of the basin wall. The anchorage being in place,

I walked forward, step, pause, step, until the cord pulled taut warningly.

There

was still nothing ahead of me, even though I took off my belt and swung it forward as a lash, hoping so to encounter a wall. Defeated in that direction I

edged to the right, determined to make a complete circle about my anchor.

I had gone perhaps a quarter of that distance when a barrier did loom out of the

dark, barely visible in the globe light. A wall—so close I could touch it with

my hand. Running my fingers along its surface I moved on several steps. The cord

grew so tight I was afraid of pulling it loose. I stooped to near floor level where my boots had kicked some small rocks. There I found one to which I made fast the other end of the line. Heaping several more of the rocks on top of that

one I left it so, intending from here to keep to the wall as a guide.

The wall was all rock, not packed earth, rough enough to be the natural wall of

a cavern. Yet it ran on and on without end, save that once it curved to form a

side chamber.

At last I did come to a second section of wall that met the first at a right angle. This I also used as a guide. I had, however, taken only a few tentative

steps along beside it when I halted. The rustling sound, the noisome smell—both

were back! I was no longer alone.

Hastily I wrapped one end of my belt about my fist, leaving the buckle end dangling. This was the only weapon I could improvise, but I could flail out with

it through the dark and defend myself so. I set my shoulders against the wall and stood waiting, hoping my ears could give me warning of an attack.

There came a grunting, which rose and fell—it might even have been speech of a

kind. Only I could not center it at any one place in the dark. Suddenly I thought of the gryphon globe—the light from that could betray me. However, I had

no time left now if my ears did not play me false.

I heard their rush, the pad of feet racing toward me. Tense, I let the globe swing free. Poor as its illumination was, it might serve if the creatures came

close enough. Also, I had the belt whip.

I was hardly sure whether I could detect movements or not, but I swung the belt

and felt it strike home. There was a satisfactory squeal—perhaps I had done more

damage than I might have hoped for.

Skidding across the floor, to come to a stop just beyond the toes of my boots,

was a dark hunch of a body. I swung the globed gryphon, needing to see the nature of my enemy. The thing gave a cry and flopped hastily away. I gained only

a quick impression of something much smaller than myself, covered by thick hair

or fur, not clothing, though it had four limbs, a body, and a blob of a head not

too far from human kind.

The stench that arose from it was nauseating. I swung the belt once more, hard,

hoping to catch it again before it could dodge. My blow failed, I only heard the

buckle clang against rock.

There followed a determined attack and I lashed out again and again. Whether the

things were used to being met by resistance I could not tell, but their grunting

rose to a screeching as they dodged and flopped, so near the limit of my vision

I was mostly only aware by touch when caught any of them with my lash.

I had no idea how many of them there were, while I had ever the thought that if

enough of them made a concentrated rush at me I could hope for no escape.

For some reason I could not understand they did not try that, making only scattered, darting attacks as if they were being held at bay by more than just

my clumsy belt. Then an idea began to grow in my mind that it was the gryphon that must bother them. I could now try a great gamble, which might lose me what

little advantage I had, or I could keep on beating the air about me until my arm

was tired past raising (it was already beginning to ache and it took more of an

effort to forestall those rushes).

If I only knew more about the nature of the Power the globe employed! I had seen

it in action, yes, but both times it had been animated by one who had some knowledge of such energy— which I did not. Neevor's promise—that to me it was a

key— flitted through my mind. But it was not a key I needed now—rather a weapon.

With the belt hanging ready in one hand, I ducked my head to tree the chain of

the globe so I could swing it, though at a much more restricted length, like my

improvised whip.

I whirled it up and around my head. To my vast astonishment, the result was the

same as that of whirling a flaming torch to increase its fire. There followed a

burst of light—the gryphon was lost to sight in the brilliant flare—the beams of

which shot far farther than I would ever have dared hope.

For the first time I saw the enemy clearly. They stood hardly higher than my shoulder as they shuffled backward in haste. However, they retreated still facing me, hands or paws outstretched and sweeping through the air in my direction, as if their desire to cut me down was so great they must continue to

wave those handlike extremities from which sprouted huge, sickle-shaped claws.

Their bodies were completely covered by a bristly growth, which looked coarser

than any fur or hair, more like fine roots, while there were pits in their rounded skulls though they did not appear to hold any eyes. Their faces became

muzzles not unlike that of a foreshortened hound's, showing great fangs of teeth—hinting ominously at what their diets might be.

In the light of the globe they squirmed, cowered, raised their clawed paws to cover their eye pits, while they shrieked and cried out as if I had handed them

over to dire torment.

Then, cutting through all that clamor, there sounded a single long, high-pitched

whistle. The noise hurt my ears—as sharp as a knife thrust into my head.

The things' heads swung about on their bowed shoulders, turning almost as one in

the direction from which the whistle had come. Then they moved, scuttling away

at a speed that took them out of the range of light into their normal dark. I could hear the thud of their feet as they ran until there was nothing but silence once again.

So I had withstood one attack. Only I gained no sense of triumph from that, being sure that it was only a first one and that those under-earth dwellers would return. Which meant that I must find some way out before they mustered up

will or desire to try me again.

I held the globe closer to the wall straining to see any opening, knowing better

than to forsake it and head out into the open blackness of this place.

That whistle—and the things had answered it as hounds do their master's call.

It

might well be that these creatures, who had tried to pull me down, had brought

me here, were tools or servants of someone else, undoubtedly infinitely more dangerous. Why they had been called off when they need only have tired me out…

Unless… I weighed the gryphon in my hand. If I only knew!

I leaned one shoulder against the wall, the globe cupped against me. My encounter by battle, brief as it had been, had left me with an aching arm and a

body, I was surprised to find now, shaking as if I had lately crawled out of my

bed after a long illness. I realized it had been a long time, or so a gnawing within me testified, since I had eaten. Water I had found—but food to strengthen

me…? Where in this dark hole could I hope to discover that?

The wall seemed endless as I shuffled on, my pace very slow, for I also stopped

every few steps to listen, always fearing that the dark-loving creatures might

not come so boldly next time, rather would creep upon me stealthily. The globe

gave off a warmth that battled the chill beginning to eat into me. I kept glancing down to reassure myself of the light—which had now faded to its first

dim glow. The gryphon was once more visible, its sparks of eyes seemingly raised

to meet mine. Suddenly I realized that I was whispering to it.

First just Kerovan's name—which I said over and over in a sing-song as if it were a spell that could lift me through all care and danger. I tried to raise in

my mind a picture of him as I had last seen him.

What followed was—no, I cannot ever find the words to describe what happened.

It

was as if some energy had hurled me back against the wall with a bruising force.

I had—somehow I had—linked thought for an instant with my lord!

Frantically I stared down at the gryphon, fighting to hold onto that instant of

communication—to know—to feel… I had not been alone. He… it had been as if he stood beside me. If I only could once more…!

"If I knew—if I only knew!" I cried desperately to the gryphon. The globe was a

link, but chance only had made it, and now it was gone. That it was my own ignorance that stood in the way made my heart pound, brought tears of rage to my

eyes.

Rage would not help. I did not need Elys to warn me against unshielded emotion.

One commanded oneself before one learned to command Power. That was part of the

long training she had spoken of—years spent in learning mastery, of how to nourish talent.

Will might control talent, but one had to center will, shut away all else, put

all one's energy into forming of one's will a weapon as strong as steel. What could I do with my will? This was the hour in which I could bring it and me to a

testing—a testing that could mean life or death.

Kerovan

I STOOD THERE IN THE HALL OF THE WERERIDERS I COULD INDEED feel the touch of danger—yet this was not a threat aimed at me. No, it was something inherent in

that single word Herrel of the cat-shape had uttered, the word that had burst from him when I had described the mutilated body I had discovered in a dismal oasis of the Waste.

"Thas." It was Lord Hyron who repeated that word now, and his voice was low, hardly above a whisper. I watched, for the second time, air begin to curdle about him. Whether he willed it or not this time, his shapechange had begun.

Then, perhaps because he was able to control a near-compelling emotion, he was

man again.

"Watch the ground," he said to me with the force of one delivering a necessary

warning. "For the earth itself is Thas land, and they have the rule of the under

surface of it. They are no friend to any who can wear that without harm!" He pointed a long forefinger at the band about my wrist. "That they are now found

near here—that means matters are on the move—matters that have long been dormant."

He shook his head until his mane of hair near blinded him with its fringe across

bright eyes.

"You are neither one thing nor the other, you who call yourself Kerovan.

Learn

what you are, and that speedily, or you shall be reduced to nothing at all—not

even bones left to dry in desert air."

Such was the farewell the lord of the Wereriders took of me, for I was not invited to be a guest under that bush roof. I had been offered no greeting cup

when I came, no stirrup cup when I left. It was as if here I was less considered

than even the most humble of landsmen. I did not allow my temper to take edge from that; for I was not wishful to remain longer in a place where I could never

be sure which shape those about me wore was theirs in truth.

The sun was well west when I came forth into the clearing in which that half-living keep stood. None of the Wereriders had gathered to see me off.

Only

he who called himself Herrel followed me out, to mount again, and stood waiting

to escort me from their holding. Perhaps in some way they were as suspicious of

me as I was of them. My last sight of the keep showed me that the branches that

clothed its upper stories were waving as energetically as if storm-tossed, while

from them numerous small shapes sprang outward, heading in great racing leaps for the wood. Did they go to hunt by night, I wondered, as I trudged beside Herrel's shadow-dappled mount? Or were they to form another part of my escort?

I

sensed in them a source of peril I did not understand, but thought it prudent that I be wary of them.

Once more we threaded that path through the wood. This time the gloom had deepened until now and then I stumbled, half-blinded by the dusk, though neither

Herrel nor his mount had any difficulty in keeping the trail. It crossed my mind

that those of the feline breed had excellent night sight, so that this man who

could will to be a furred, fanged hunter on four paws might well share that sense.

I speculated, as we went in silence, as to how it might feel to be a shapechanger, to taste at desire another kind of life far divorced from that I

myself awoke to each morning. Did the instincts and thoughts of a man remain alive in the mind of the beast, or were such dulled and forgotten after one endured the change? Was there in truth a real alteration of body, or was that only a forceful hallucination which the Weres were able to impress upon others?

Had I indeed seen Hyron as an actual stallion ready to savage me, or just what I

was meant to see?

So musing, I tried to recall such legends of the Weres as the Dalesmen knew.

But

all our stories were so old, so overlaid with the horror of people who had faced

such a mixture of nature, that I really knew very little. I would have liked to

have questioned Herrel—asked him what it meant to be two different natures fused

into one. In my own way was I not this also? Did he ever consider himself so apart from normal mankind as to be cursed, walled off from any small pleasure of

life? No—that burden would not touch one who walked among his own kin, who had

the comradeship of those who shared his own talent, if one could call it that.

Also I knew better than to ask such questions of a stranger.

Our winding path so disguised the length of the journey that I was not sure how

close we were to the outermost part of the tree wall when there came a thin, high chittering from the left. It was the first sound other than the faint thud

of hooves and the scarcely heard pad of my own feet to break the silence.

"Wait!" Herrel reined up.

I, who was behind him on the narrow path, obeyed his order. He leaned forward,

his head turned a little toward the nearest of the tree branches.

Again, imperative, came that sound. I heard Herrel whistle— not that command note that he had used to stay the panic of my horses, but rather as if he summoned.

From the branch toward which he had been looking sprang a small creature, certainly of the same species as those abiding in the roof of the Were keep.

It

balanced on the Were's shoulder and gave a series of sharp squeaks, as if it spoke to him in its own tongue.

At last he held out his arm and the creature ran along it with the sureness it

might have used on a stout branch, leaped out, vanishing in the walling mass of

green. Herrel looked to me.

"Thas," he said tersely.

"Here?" Though I still did not know the nature of that enemy, the reaction of the Weres earlier had made very plain this was a threat even they respected, not

to be taken lightly.

"At your camp." He prodded his mount from a walk to a trot, so that I must run

to keep up. However, it was only a very short time before we burst free into the

open land. There was more light here—much more, for the western sky was striped

with color. Only, what I looked upon was such an area of disaster as made me think for a moment that I was the victim of hallucination. The ground where I had made my camp was now a raw mass of new cut ruts and hollows, of great circular scars, laying bare piles of soil. Where my horses had grazed there were

no animals, while from the broken ground there arose a stench of foul decay strong enough to make me gag.

Down on his knees in the midst of that churned and torn sod was a man in Dalesman's armor hacking at the earth with heavy jabs of his sword, sending broken clods flying in all directions. At his side a woman, also wearing mail but without any helm on her dark head, used the edge of a small arm shield to aid in the frantic digging.

As we broke from the wood, and I ran toward that mass, she glanced up—then reached to catch the arm of the sword user. The man turned his head to note us,

but he did not pause in his digging. It might have been that any halt in his labor could be, tor some reason, fatal.

The woman arose to her feet, shaking free a scoopful of earth she held in the shield. There was light enough to see her face clearly, and I was startled, for

there was that in it I recognized— though I could not have set name to her. I felt, as I had not ever before in my life, that her kind was kin—to me who had

no kin. Was she another inhabitant of the Waste, but closer to man in heritage

than Herrel and his kind?

She spoke as I came up to her, not to me, rather to the man still digging.

"There is no longer any use, Jervon. She is lost to us."

She then turned to eye Herrel and to him also she spoke, sharply, as one who had

the right to demand answers.

" Warrior, what manner of peril is it that can turn solid earth into a whirlpool

and engulf a traveler so? Who casts such a Power spell and for what purpose?"

He continued to sit his mount, though he met her gaze squarely, a faint frown on

his face.

"Thas," he replied.

And what are Thas—or could it be who?" she persisted, with the same tone of command.

"Deep earth dwellers. The inner parts of the ground are theirs. It is their given talent to command it to their desires when they wish. As to why they set

such a trap here—" He shrugged. "The Waste holds divers species, we go our own

ways, following the demands of our natures. Though this is the truth: it has not

been known for many seasons that the Thas venture outward from the mountains where lie their chosen burrows. Though they may well have delved so without our

knowing of it, they run their ways very deep. Also, we of the Waste meddle not

among ourselves." His answer was chill, as if he meant it as a reproof for her

persistence, her open questioning of a matter he plainly thought was none of her

concern.

She stepped across a deep rut, advanced closer to him. Her companion had arisen,

his soil-encrusted sword still in hand. I had seen his like in the Dales, for he

was plainly a man of that pure blood. Though he wore a helm, it carried no House

badge. Still there was nothing about him that proclaimed "outlaw."

"These burrows, which the Thas run for their purposes," the woman continued,

"how deeply may such lie and where?"

Herrel shrugged again. "Who knows? Or cares. We have never had any traffic with

the earth-dwellers—their ways are not ours."

"Nor do you want to meet them, I presume." There was a note of challenge in that. She was using a tone sharp enough to bring blood to the cheeks of any fighting man. Certainly she stood in no awe of Herrel. If she knew what he was…

I had a strong suspicion that she did. Perhaps she had had dealings with his kind before and knew best how to gain answers. "Why do they seek to entrap those

who offer them no harm?"

"We do not know. Thas are Thas. But such as this"-—he glanced down at the churned earth, what had been a camp and was now only a morass of disturbed soil—"I have not seen before. There is—" His frown grew deeper.

"Perhaps you wish to say that there is something new— an awakening somewhere in

this land," she answered him. "Shapechanger, have you been so long safe in the

refuge of your kind that you do not sense a stir—or know that there is a new element ready to invade the Waste? Old things can be stirred into life by those

having the proper key—and the power to turn such. If this is done wrongly, then

all, no matter who or how they seek to stand aloof, can be drawn in—into a battle where forces, blindly awakened, cannot be easily controlled—or laid—again!"

Herrel had been studying her face. His mount moved restlessly, sidled away from

her. I did not believe the Wererider had any tear of the woman, rather he was moved by an instinctive wariness, which was a part of his heritage.

"You have Power," he observed. "Ask any questions of those or that which you can

summon. We have no dealing with the Teas, nor"—now he looked from her directly

at me—"do we want any with those who can awaken aught here. Carry no assurances

of any aid now to your lord, Dalesman-by-half. If the Waste stirs we shall have

other affairs to deal with."

With no more words and no backward look, he sent his mount trotting for the wood, the horse's hooves throwing up clods of the loose earth as he went.

It was my turn for questions. Who were these two, and what did they mean about

another who had been trapped in the earth? Again it was the woman who spoke.

"You are Kerovan." She did not ask, she named me as one she had known well.

Her familiar use of my name was disturbing. Had she and this lighting man been

sent after me by Imgry (who was the type, I was sure, to always strive to make

certain any plan by a double protection)? He could very well have caught within

his search net this woman (I was sure she possessed the talents Herrel had recognized by instinct) and dispatched her also, with the same orders he had given me.

"I am Kerovan," I admitted, "and you?"

I waited for her to tell me of Imgry, but all she answered was, I am Elys, and

this is Jervon."

The Dalesman only nodded. He stopped to catch up a tuft of grass and began wiping the soil from his blade.

"We came," the woman continued deliberately, "with my Lady Joisan."

I froze. Of all the explanations I had been prepared to hear that one was the most impossible. For a long breath I could not believe I had heard her aright.

Joisan here? But—where—and why?

As I looked around wildly, Elys then added, "She was engulfed—in that…" To my growing horror she pointed to the hole where Jervon had been digging.

"You—you lie!" I was caught now in such bewilderment I could only deny and deny

that such an impossibility could be so. This was trickery, the kind of trickery

those of the Waste might use to entrap one. "Joisan is in Norsdale-. I set her

free—she is safe—she is…"

That which welled in me now was an anger deeper, a fear greater, than I thought

any one could hold. Now I knew— fleetingly—why I had felt so cold. This was the

fire that had been in me, that I had willed so fiercely into an inner prison.

Jervon strode toward me, his sword point rising, aimed at the small hollow left

bare between my chin and my mail.

"My lady does not lie," he said with dangerous softness. "The Lady Joisan was here and the whirlpool of the earth swallowed her down. She came out of her concern for one Kerovan, who, "it would seem, lacks any concern for her."

Madness… either they were—or I was—mad! Hallucination—could this be some spell

born perhaps from that meeting in the Wereriders' Hall? To have any dealings with those who possessed Power was always dangerous and tricky. This could be some subtle attempt to try and influence me by awaking emotions I dared not allow to trouble my mind—or my heart.

Save that now Elys told me in detail of how the two of them had met with Joisan

in the Dales, and of her great desire to find me, of how they decided I might have gone into the Waste because of a scrying in which Joisan took part, of how

they had come here to what they believed was my camp—and then of the attack…

This was all true! I could not deny it any longer, and at that moment I could have thrown back my head and howled like any winter-haunted wolf. That Joisan had followed me! She had no part in my life—just as I had no right in hers. I was bound to a dark past, perhaps a worse future. She must be free of me.

That she had been taken, buried, caught in an evil web of the Dark spawn because

of her mistaken value of me—that I could not bear. Only I must—I had to accept

the truth, hard as it was.

I crossed the ruts to the hole where Jervon had dug so fruitlessly and then I looked up from that shallow pit to ask just one question. Though I already knew

what the answer must be and how I would stand condemned by it, in my own eyes,

as long as I lived. "How long?"

Elys had followed me. Now her fingers just touched my arm. I did not deserve any

sympathy, but I was still too frozen without, too a-fire within, to reject her

out of hand.

"I do not believe she is truly buried."

I glanced at her, turned my eyes once more to the earth. There was no use in her

trying to reassure me thus. Joisan was gone into the Dark. I was just beginning

to realize what a loss was mine. I had believed when I rode out of Norsdale that

I had armored myself, that I accepted in full the bitterness of what my life would be from that day forward. Now I knew that I had not sensed even a hundredth part of what fate had brought to burden me as long as I walked the earth that had taken her.

Now Elys's fingers tightened their grip. She gave a tug, which brought me to look at her again.

"She is not dead." Her words were quiet but delivered with conviction, a conviction I could not accept, caught as I was in my inner hell.

"Lady"—I spoke in the same quiet tone also, with a remnant of the old great hall

courtesy—"you well know there is no way she could be buried so and still live."

"We shall see—and I promise you this shall be true seeing."

She made a summoning gesture with her other hand. Jervon had already gone to where a saddlebag lay half-hidden in up-thrown soil. From that he brought her a

wrapped bundle.

Twilight was now upon us, but when Elys let fall the wrapping there appeared a

concentration of what light was left, centering on the thing she uncovered, a silver cup that shone with a moon's full light, as if the moon's beams themselves had been forged into it.

I watched, dull-eyed, as she mixed pinches of dried herbs, which she took from

small bags carried in her belt pouch, shifting them into a very small measure of

water Jervon poured from a saddle bottle. I saw her lips move soundlessly as she

twirled the cup. Then she held it out to me.

Against my will I accepted it. Not that I denied she could use some talent to so

summon sight of Joisan, but because I was so sure of, and so feared, what I might see. Oh my wrist blazed the band, rising to a glow that matched that of the cup—no warning there—could it be a promise? I would not allow myself to believe that.

Holding the moon between my hands I looked down—into its hollow bowl.

As I had expected—darkness. No! The liquid within had taken on life of its own,

swirled, though I held the cup steady. Now it climbed the wall of the hollow, filling it to the brim. Still I stared at a surface that remained dark. Then…

A glow—so faint—still it held steady there. Perhaps the urgency of my fear and

desire gave power to my sight at that moment when I longed so, needed this so much. There—there was the gryphon! The small beast was alive with light, and behind it—I fought against the dark, I tried to compel greater sight with my will. I must see! Slowly, very slowly, I did. There was only a shadow of a face,

but the eyes were open, it was the face of the living—Joisan!

Hallucination, meant to deceive?

No! Somehow I was certain that the gryphon, that my wrist band, would not allow

a false vision. I saw Joisan alive. She was not dead, crushed in the earth.

But

where was she—and how might I find her?

The liquid began to subside, fall back in the hollow. I cried out, "No! I must

see—learn where she is.."

Too late, as one part of my mind was forced to accept. Now there was only a small portion at the very bottom of the cup. The vision was lost.

Elys took the cup out of my now shaking hands. I looked to her as I had not done

for a long time to anyone—with pleading— for she was my only link with Joisan.

"Where? And how may I come to her?" My tongue seemed thick, swollen, so I could

hardly mouth those questions.

With the tutored prudence of a Wisewoman, she went from me to pour away the liquid—not upon the churned soil, but beyond, where the ground was still undisturbed, gesturing with her other hand. Only when she had done with such ritual did she again face me.

"One is only shown what the Power can produce at that moment. And," she looked

about her somberly, "we have used the talent in a place that has been disturbed

by that which is certainly not friendly to us, which may not be of the Light at

all. It is best now for us to push on—away from all influences that may arise here."

"But where is Joisan?" I did not move from where I stood in the deep ruts of the

freshly turned ground.

Jervon was at work, pulling some pack bags out of the dirt. Those I had brought

had completely disappeared, but apparently others, carried by their party, had

been so near the edge of the disturbance as to escape burial. There was no sign

of the horses.

I crossed the disturbed ground directly to Elys, determined to have from her any

hint that would aid me to find my lady.

She did not look up, rather busied herself with the rewrapping of the cup. I could already guess her answer. There are limits to all talents. Perhaps hers had been reached when she had shown me that Joisan had survived. In what direction Joisan had vanished, except down, or what further peril threatened her—those one could only imagine. I strove, with all the force of will I could

summon, to keep certain dire mind-pictures out of my thoughts.

Jervon had piled up what he had salvaged. Now, facing east, he put two fingers

to his lips and whistled. The sound carried as clearly as had those notes Herrel

had used to quiet my horses. Elys, the wrapped cup cradled against her in one arm, now raised her right hand in a summoning gesture.

I turned to look in that direction. Twilight was fast upon us now and I saw nothing. Then, pushing through a rim of brush, a horse trotted, to stop short,

snort, and plant its hooves hard in the ground, expressing plainly a refusal to

advance any nearer that evil-smelling spread of torn earth.

Jervon, voicing those sounds an expert horseman uses to soothe an excited and frightened beast, advanced slowly toward the animal. Twice it snorted, the whites of its eyes showing, once half wheeling as if to make off again.

However,

some strong tie between rider and mount held fast, so that the Dalesman was able

to lay hand flat against the sweating neck. The horse, after one more toss of head, nosed against the man's shoulder, allowing him to comb its mane with his

fingers.

Elys followed him, still making beckoning gestures. Before she reached her companion, a second horse appeared at a slow and reluctant pace. Thus they summoned to them two that were excellent mounts of the type used and cherished

by the fighters of the Dales. After them trailed another, a smaller mare of mountain breed, and lastly a pack pony. Of my own desert mounts there was no trace. Probably suited to this land, they had joyfully taken their freedom once

they had fled. I divined that, by long association, these two who had companioned Joisan in her search had established close communication with their

own horses—and perhaps those in turn had influenced the mare Joisan had ridden.

For I recognized it to be one of the sort commonly seen in Norsdale. I had no hope that my own would ever appear.

Because at the moment I did not know what lay before me now, I went to where Jervon and Elys were stroking the sweating, still-frightened horses, using soft

words of reassurance. The man glanced at me.

"Elys is right—we had best move on. Even these know better than to stay where the Dark has been at work."

We brought saddles and packs and made ready, though the dark was gathering fast.

Then, on Joisan's mare, I swung out across the open land, away from the forest

of the Weres, the place where Joisan had last been. I did not want to leave, but

neither could I linger on there. If I only had some clue… My hands tightened on

the reins and my wrist band seemed to flare with a last flicker of light.

Though the dusk became thicker, Jervon, who had drawn up beside me, leading the

pack horse, did not pause. Then Elys came even with him, so we three rode abreast into the night.

Both their mounts suddenly whinnied and broke into a trot, my mare following.

It

was so we reached a waterway, cut deeply into the surface of the plain. The water which had worn that gully was now but a small stream running through a narrow middle channel. However, the banks, down which our horses half slid when

we allowed them their heads, gave one a sense of protection. We made camp there

as the full dark closed in. For want of any better hope I had come this far—what

I would do next I had no idea.

There crossed my mind what I had said to Hyron, that I would ride north and west

in quest of my own kind (if any such existed). That declaration had small meaning now. Once before I had sought Joisan across this same imperiled country—when she had been taken by my enemies. I knew without any question that

now I must seek her a second time—save that I had no trail to follow.

If you traced the tangle of our lives back to its beginning, where did the interlocking of our fates begin—that interlocking which had now endangered her

twice over? Was it because she had been axe-wedded to me in both our childhoods—or because I had given her the gryphon and so made her of importance

to Rogear? Had my life not touched hers with these dangers she would have never

fallen to this last peril.

If she had not believed that she had a duty to me, because she was my lady (even

though I had fully released her from her vows), she would never have followed me

into this new danger. Therefore mine was the fault, and if she could be saved, I

must do it. At the moment I know that this stood above any task Imgry had set on

me. What did I care for the Dales, even in their death throes, when Joisan was

lost in some web of the Dark?

Joisan

IN SPITE OF MY TIRED BODY, OF MY HUNGER. OF THE NAGGING FEAR that I was trapped

forever here—so that the very dark itself pressed against me with a force I could almost feel, I forgot for a space all this—for I was possessed by this idea of the use of will. So slender and frail a thing as thought alone—might this indeed be for me more of a key than…

A key! It was as if I came fully alive, waking out of a nightmare-laden sleep.

Neevor had said it—and I had marshaled only human thoughts of locks and doors—not of this! If I were right… !

Once more I set my shoulders against the support of the wall, ready to do battle

in another way—with a part of myself. I cradled the globe, high against my breast, dared to take the chance of closing out my senses for a space, all that

lay about me, centering my attention only on the gryphon—on its red eyes.

Now I did not fight to reach Kerovan—no. This was of even greater importance in

the here and now—my own escape. If will—my untrained will—held any force, all of

it must be focused on my key!

"Out!" I do not know whether I whispered, cried, shouted that aloud, or if it rang only through my mind, answered by the strain I laid upon myself. "Out!"

Slowly, with such an effort as even an hour before I had not believed lay within

me, I envisioned a wall such as that against which I now leaned—save with one difference. In it was an opening—a door… out!

The globe blazed with heat, it burned. Still I held and willed that neat away from me. I had no body, no pain, I had only a will—a will demanding obedience.

Out!

Once more the globe burst bright with fire, dazzling me by shooting forth white

rays. Those shifted, though I did not change the position of my hand or what it

held. The rays joined into one, became an oddly thick rod of pearl color—as if

the light had taken on tangible substance.

I turned in the direction it now pointed, began to walk, keeping—with every fraction of energy locked on it—the picture in my mind of what I sought, of what

I must find. At that moment nothing in the world must be allowed to exist save

that my of light. I would have been easy prey for the creatures of the dark—had

they chosen to move in upon me then.

The ray crooked, turned, struck, as a spear is sent flying at a target—not the

wall but a crevice, a long, vertical crack. Into that spun my radiant spear and

I followed. The way was rough and I stumbled over loose rocks and slippery gravel.

Just as my arm had tired when I had used the belt lash over and over, so now my

will was beginning to falter. The ray rippled, no longer so solid. This narrow

crevice sloped sharply upward and I climbed; each time my footing shifted the light dimmed a fraction as the focus of my thought was disturbed.

It began to seem that I had been trapped forever in an evil dream, condemned to

ever climb over a constantly shifting footing where I fought for balance. The fingers of my left hand were raw-tipped from scrambling for holds on the wall,

while my other wrist was stiff and numb as I held the globe out before me.

The

illumination from it grew fainter; I was nearing the limit of the compulsion I

could put upon my will.

Now the gleam was hardly brighter than it had been back in the cavern. I was forced, in spite of myself, to climb and climb without knowing what a misstep might bring. Finally the impression came dimly, through my exhaustion, that my

path was leveling out once again. Also, the stench that had polluted the lower

region was gone. I lifted my chin a fraction, drew a deep, sobbing breath.

Surely what had touched against my cheeks just then had been a thin current—of

fresh air!

Hope gave me a last spurt of energy. I pushed forward to half fall out of the crevice into a very different place, where I stood amazed, staring about, first

in bewilderment and then in growing wonder.

This still lay underground, though far above was a circular opening to the sky.

For I was sure the dark expanse I sighted, with those points of light, could be

no other than night sky and distant stars. However the cavern was filled with a

pale illumination that did not come from any torch, lamp, or fire. Instead the

walls themselves gave off a diffused glow, pale and wan, but enough for me to see.

The chamber, cave, or whatever it might be, was a hemisphere with a level flooring. Round walls curved up on all sides. Such perfect symmetry could not be

of nature's devising.

The floor was divided by a large number of low partitions, which followed no logical pattern, cutting across or joining each other to form a crazy maze of sharp-angled spaces. There was no design nor could I imagine any purpose for such a meticulous network of squares, triangles, and other odd forms. Some looked far too small even to set foot into, others were wide enough to provide

short paths, which led nowhere.

I decided to edge along the outer walls and thus seek any exit. For to reach that roof opening was far beyond my ability. But there did exist an unwalled space between the first of the maze walls and the circumference of the cavern.

It was not until I squeezed into that space and set out that my hand (which I still slipped along the curve to steady me, for to my rising concern I was growing more and more unsteady on my feet) discovered this wall was not as smooth as it looked. Instead it bore a regular series of indentations.

Peering

more closely at them, I decided they were runes, though in what forgotten language they had been wrought must remain a mystery.

When, as a child, I had visited Norsdale Abbey with my aunt and had there been

allowed to delve into the archives, I had seen manuscripts that reproduced fragments of inscriptions from the places of the Old Ones. Though for my own people these remained a tongue locked against their knowing, these discoveries

had been preserved because they marked this or that place that had had some influence upon the Dalesman.

How fiercely I longed to be able to read what was inscribed here. Perhaps the very information I needed—how to get out— lay in those lines under my fingers.

However, even though I could not master their secret, I continued to slip my hand along over those lost messages as I went.

I had won a good third of the way around that curved rise, and as far as I could

see ahead, there was no break in the wall, nothing to let me out into the world,

the sky of which hung so tantalizingly overhead. I was tired.

At last, my legs shaking under me, I perched on one of the maze walls and let my

hands fall to my knees. I was thirsty and my thoughts kept running back to that

pool I had found in the dark, the icy sweetness of the water there. This place

was utterly sterile and dead. No water—no food—I had come to the end of my escape way to discover but another trap.

Nor did I believe that I could summon up once again that strength of concentration to bring the globe alive. Even as I rested there my energy seeped

away as though I were deep wounded, losing heart's blood. My confidence drained

in the same way, I huddled where I was, apathetic, in a state of uncaring.

I could not have slept, but I must have fallen into a half-dreamlike state, for

I did not blink and look about me again until I realized that the gray light of

the chamber was changing. Glancing up I could no longer see those pinpoints of

stars. Rather, there came a paling of the sky. In that outer world I could not

reach, a new day must be at dawn.

The sight of that portion of sky now was a dull torment to me. I might as well

wish for wings, such as the gryphon sported, to raise me out of here; there was

no other escape. However, the sight of day broke through the state of uncaring

that had held me. Somehow I wavered to my feet, stood swaying. My mouth was dry—my whole throat parched and raw. Almost I could turn again to the dark way

that had brought me here, return to seek the basin into which that blessed water

dripped in constant flow. The rest of the curved wall was still to be explored,

to no purpose. I turned unsteadily and viewed it all—no break save that ragged

seam through which I had first come. To go stumbling in and out of that crazy mixtures of spaces on the floor was utter folly.

Drawing on a very small store of strength, I began again to move, without any real hope, only because I could not simply sit and wait for death to enfold me.

The light above grew ever stronger. Day did not pierce to the walls of the chamber, there the gray still held. Then a sudden sharp flash to my right brought my head around.

Daylight had awakened a glittering response from edges of those low dividing walls that were immediately under the dome opening. The response was one of rich

color.

I stood in wonder to gaze at gem-bright sparks of red, of gold, of brilliant green, of purple, amber, blue—winging from stone that only moments before had been lifelessly dull. It looked as if a casket had been opened above, loosing in

careless profusion such jewels as even the wealthiest of the Dalelords had never

hoped to possess.

There was—I began now to perceive it—some arrangement, some pattern about those

sparks. They lay thick in some places, thin in others, not at all in a few sections. A design perhaps, but one (the idea awoke sluggishly in a mind that had been overtired by my earlier efforts) that could only be properly viewed and

understood if one could see it from above.

Could a person standing on one of the low walls see it? I leaned back against the curved wall, an uncomfortable position, to consider that. What good could it

possibly do for me to make such an effort? This was only another unsolvable mystery and nothing to give me any aid.

The glitter grew steadily stronger. I could almost imagine that I saw mists, of

color flaring upward even as flames arise from wood being consumed. There was certainly something of import out there, tenuous, but perhaps having more substance than light alone.

In spite of my telling myself that this was a useless puzzle beyond my solving,

I began to make my way, creeping from one of the enclosures into the next, toward that spread of radiance. While I was still some distance from it, I scrambled up on top of one of the dividing walls, teetered there, hands thrown

out to balance me.

At first I thought that if there was any design I could not reach a height high

enough to discern its outlines. However, the longer I traced one color to the next, or the joining of the glistening walls that formed the base, the more I began to perceive that what I looked at was in reality the representation of a

symbol I had seen before—carefully lined upon a sheet of very old parchment in

the Abbey library.

The general outline was that of a winged creature, but not a bird or any of the

fanciful, monstrous beasts Dalesmen were pleased to use to identify their House

clans. The outspread wings, the point of one of which stretched quite close to

the wall on which I now perched, were blue. Seeing that color gave me a little

heart. It was well known that those places of the Old Ones that held Power that

was safe, or at least unharmful, to my race were always touched with that color.

A round globe rested between the wings, the expanse marked by a circular center

for the maze. This glowed amber-gold. While to the fore and back of that were other colors in bright gem shades, as if the thing wore a double crown, one at

either side of what might represent either a bodiless head or a headless body.

The longer I stared at that pattern the clearer it became, while the colors were

now bright enough to dazzle my eyes. I wavered back and forth on my perch, my weariness fighting against my will. Only I was as one entangled in a strong spell, for I could not turn my back and move away.

My hands closed about the gryphon globe, half expecting that to be afire, gathering force from what I looked upon. Perhaps I was too exhausted, had drawn

too much upon its energy in the cavern, for it did not awaken.

If I were enspelled, that bondage held, not only held, but drew me. Still I did

not walk straight toward the center; rather it was as if there was another in command of my movements. For some reason, I did not find this either strange or

frightening.

My path from one space to the next was odd, sometimes I circled, sometimes I retreated a step, a whole square, a curve, then went forward at a different angle. I think I laughed lightheadedly when it struck me that I might seem, to

any onlooker, to be engaged in the movements of some formal dance, such as we foot in the Dale keeps at mid-year when the kin gather for feasting.

Back, forward, sidewise, straight, my feet moved, sometimes having to squeeze into a space where my battered boots scraped both sides of the dividers.

Still,

to all things there comes an end, and at last I stepped across the final one of

the low walls to stand in that golden center, not knowing why it was important

that I be here, only that it was.

The light thickened as it streamed upward, walling me in with a veil I could no

longer see through. It made a curtain, but I did not stir to sweep it aside; I

had reached the place I was meant to be, from here there was no going on.

Now all my great weariness of body and mind settled in full force upon me, actually bearing me to the pavement, so that I wilted as if my knees were now as

soft as the bruised flesh that encased them. I was thirsty, I was hungry, I was

afraid. I would end here—there was no longer hope of reaching the world I had known.

I curled about in that gold-walled circle as might a child who has wept herself

near to sleep. There was a dulling of thought and that pushed away the fear, banished the remaining scraps of wonder—then even memory. I watched drowsily, without marveling any more, the golden light grow thicker and thicker.

Now I could no longer see even the low wall from which it rose. The light billowed, began to spin, first slowly and then faster and faster. Because it made me dizzy to watch, I closed my eyes to shut out that whirl.

There followed a moment of cold, utter cold, sharp enough to bring a cry of pain

from me. Then a feeling of deep horror that I was—elsewhere—in a place where no

one of my kind should ever venture. Through this nowhere I was swept, or pulled,

or pushed. I felt all three such urgings. The terror of the nowhere seeped into

my head, drove out the part that was truly me. My inner self, so threatened, fled thankfully into deep darkness and I knew nothing at all.

I opened my eyes. There was no curtain of golden light enclosing me. Instead sunlight wrapped me round, so warmly that my mail shirt was an overheated burden, and my skin stung from a beginning bum. I sat up.

This was not the full light of day, through some opening overhead, that bathed

me in heat. I did not still lie in the round of the circular chamber—I was in the open again!

Did I dream? I pinched my own flesh sharply between thumb and forefinger to test

that—achieving so pain but no change in what I saw. No rock walls here, rather

tufts of coarse-bladed grass and bushes. Not too far away a flock of birds weighed branches—as they pecked eagerly at a bountiful harvest of scarlet berries—so the whole growth, down to its roots, trembled and swung under their

assault.

Very slowly, still afraid that I might break this spell—which was certainly good

instead of ill—I turned my head. No, this was not deserted country. There were

walls, or the remains of such. They stood at a little distance and it was plain

they had been tumbled by time, their stone much overgrown with moss. One squat

tower was actually topped by a small tree, which had rooted itself there to take

the place of a keep lord's banner.

How had I come here?

Just at that moment I did not care. What drew me was the harvest of berries.

I

knew their like. Had I not gathered such many times over—the excess being reduced to a thick jam for winter use? They had never looked so plump, so abundant in the Dales though. Now their sweet, yet slightly tart taste promised

delight to my hot, dry mouth. I started for the bushes on my hands and knees, not sure I had strength enough to get to my feet.

The birds wheeled up and away, scolding angrily, as I began to raid their feeding place. I culled handfuls from the branches, crammed them into my mouth,

their juice relieving my thirst, their substance my hunger. I ate without thought for anything else, without prudence. If this were a dream after all, it

was the first one in which I had ever feasted with such satisfaction and delight.

After the first edge was off my thirst and hunger, I allowed myself time to survey my surroundings more closely. The bushes I attacked (I was raking berries

from the third bush by this time) had been planted in order, in spite of their

now sprawling growth, at what had once been equal distance from one another—a fact still visible.

Beyond stood several similar rows of trees. The closer I knew also as a fruit bearer, though what it now bore was just beginning to grow pink. This was another native of the Dales, which any keep-dweller, finding on his land, guarded and cherished.

So I was in what had manifestly once been a garden. Now I looked to the walls,

the three-crowned tower—ail were certainly part of a keep. Wonderingly (having

eaten what was, for that moment, my fill), I pulled myself up, still caught by

the puzzle of how I had come here.

When I had opened my eyes, I had been lying—right there!

There was a slab of stone much moss-grown. As I made my way back to it I saw that some of the green cover had been scraped away, was now in ragged tatters.

It looked as if, when I had landed—or somehow arrived there—I had done so with

violence. Now I knelt and tore loose more of the moss. Deep-carved right under

where my head had rested was the symbol of the ball with the outstretched wings.

Sitting back on my heels, I tried to think logically. I had fallen asleep, or been rendered unconscious, in the deep earth chamber, curled in the midst of a

three dimensional representation of what was carved here. Later… how much later?

I looked up at the sky. By the sun's westering position, the time must not be too far from late afternoon. Of the same day? Another? Or a still longer period?

There was no way of my knowing.

The fact remained that some agency had transferred me from the cavern into the

open, saving my life in the process. I could not be sure whether that act had been deliberate on the part of an unknown intelligence, greater and more far-seeing than my own, or whether I had merely stumbled on a process that would

have worked for anyone fortunate enough to follow the conditions set by an ancient spell.

I was inclined toward the latter theory, perhaps because that was the more comforting. To believe that I was under observation, being moved at the will of

some Old One, was enough to raise my neck hair and bring shivers in spite of the

drowsy heat.

Very well—and for now it did not matter how—I was out of the cave chamber.

Only

where might I be in relation to the place that had turned into an earth whirlpool? How far was I from my late companions? I was certain I had not been

somehow wafted out of the Waste itself, and I was weaponless, alone, with no horse or provisions, in country I did not know, without a guide. A series of facts that were enough to make anyone quail. I had only my own wits to depend upon. Night was on its inevitable way and I had no wish to be caught in the open

by any such things as might run these ridges or crawl across the land.

The answer to a quest for shelter was, of course, the ruins. Perhaps beyond those broken walls I could find a hiding hole, a shelter until morning.

The wall nearest me had fallen in convenient gaps so I did not have to seek any

gateway. Through one of the gaps I entered into a paved courtyard. Empty window

spaces and three doorways (one fringed by the rotting remains of a wooden door)

broke the inner walls. Darkish holes those were, from which I could be spied upon, though unable myself to sight any lurker. The place was alive with birds,

and I remembered Elys's dissatisfaction with the wood because it had appeared to

harbor no winged inhabitants.

Perhaps the berry feast enticed them. Still, where the ivy grew on the wall of

what might have once been the great hall of whatever lord ruled there, there was

a constant fluttering among its vines, which suggested nests concealed there in

goodly numbers.

I did not hear any pad of foot, any rustle of the drifts of last season's leaves

that lay across the pavement, but, as I turned slowly, inspecting all I could see of the ruins, I found myself indeed under observation.

By the rotted door sat a cat—not such an animal as was esteemed in the Dales because of the slaughter it caused among rats and mice that feasted on stored grain. No, this was half again as large as one of those sleek-sided, striped tabbies. Also its fur was uniformly a yellow-brown and, between its eyes, boldly

marked by a much darker growth of fur, was a V. Another such brand grew on the

upper part of its lighter breast fur.

About an arm's distance from the first was a second of the same breed, slightly

smaller, a little more lithe of body, but of the like uniform color of coat and

markings. The birds appeared to pay no attention to these who might well be termed natural enemies, rather wheeled back and forth overhead, intent upon their own comings and goings.

The cats were not alone. Before a second door squatted a small bear, sitting up

upon its haunches and rocking a little to and fro. Catching sight of that red brown form I stiffened. My hand reached by instinct for a weapon I no longer carried.

This was a very small specimen of bear, to be sure. But if it were a cub and its

mother was nearby—then I could have walked into a trap even more cruel than the

earth one I had managed to escape. I knew only too well hunters' tales. Among the worst menaces to be found in the Dales were female bears who thought, or suspected, that their offspring might be endangered.

While both the cats surveyed me with that unwinking stare that their whole species turns upon my kind upon occasion— emphasizing the gulf between us (one I

have always been certain they believe was set for their purposes)—the bear paid

me only fleeting attention. It snapped at a fly, then set to scratching vigorously with one long clawed paw at its own rounded paunch. I found that somewhat disarming and dared to expel the breath I had been holding, without knowing it, ever since I had caught sight of the creature.

I had been far too cautious to try to move—now I dared edge backward toward the

gap that had given me entry into this too-well-occupied courtyard. Clearly, as

an intruder, I was better away. And I hoped with all my heart that I would be allowed my retreat.

"A female—very young—and very stupid…"

I stopped short to stare. No one had said that! Only the cries and twitterings

of the birds could be heard. No one had spoken. Then—how had I heard, and who had dismissed me so summarily? For I was certain that those words had concerned

me. I fumbled with the buckle of my belt, ready once again to use it weapon wise

as I had against the creatures in the dark. Only— who was the enemy here?

"To be young is a state through which all pass. And this one is not truly stupid—I think—only untaught. Which is another matter altogether."

I turned a gasp into a gulp. My hair had worked loose of its braiding since I no

longer had a helm to hold it in place. I reached up with my left hand to brush

away a straying lock that I might keep close attention upon those three—two cats, large, a bear, undersized. There was, I would take heart oath on that, no

other life here—save the birds. And those I discounted at once.

The smaller of the cats arose leisurely and approached me. I stood my ground, even dropping my hand from the belt buckle. It advanced until it was just beyond

reaching distance from me.

I settled again into the same dignified stance as its companion held, tail tip

curled decorously over the front paws. Those unblinking yellow eyes were lifted

to mine, caught—and held— my gaze. Now I knew!

"Who—what are you?" I had to moisten my lips with my tongue and use effort to ask that question. My voice echoed back from the open eyes of the windows and sounded far too small and tremulous in my own ears.

There was no answer. Still I was sure I had not been mistaken. The speaker had

been this animal—or the larger one behind it. One had commented disparagingly upon me, the other had replied with more tolerance. And I had caught that speech

in—my mind!

Kerovan

I WAS BUSIED WITH MY THOUGHTS, MAKING MY DECISION AS JERVON and I worked together without words, hobbling the horses after they drank, leaving them to graze through the night. When the moon arose I stood watching it, remembering the silver of the cup—a cup that could have been carved from that pure disk.

Tonight the stars also seemed unusually bright, gems flashing in the cloudless

sky.

Beyond the valley of the stream the land lay open, save for dark clumps of trees

or brush here and there. I was used to the Dales with their protecting ridges.

Now, having on impulse climbed to the edge of the river cut, I stood watching shadows grow darker until each and every one of those growths appeared lapped in

a pool of dark. The sky was alight, fresh and open— but this land was secret, it

held no easy road for such as us.

A rising night wind blew against me. I had taken off my helm so that the wind tugged at my hair, dried the sweat that had gathered under the band of my headgear, cooled me—perhaps too much. Silver and black was all this land—silver

above, black below. It was that darker part that held us.

Inside me something awoke, stirred as if from a long sleep, then was gone before

I could seize upon it. Memory? No. I had ranged the Waste twice before, yes.

But

never in this direction.

It was not possible for me to recognize the land before me. Yet…

I shook my head firmly against such fancies. What I needed was clear-cut purpose, a centering in on what was the most important thing in the world—to find Joisan. Though how… Reluctantly I returned to our fireless camp where the

others had settled. I came to stand before the two of them.

"She must be found," I said bleakly. "Since my own horses are gone, I shall of a

necessity take hers."

"We ride with the morning," Jervon answered me as one who stated the obvious.

"Go with safety. Bear with you my heart thanks that you have served my lady."

"You do not understand." Elys's voice came through the night that veiled her face. "We ride with you."

For a moment I tensed, so filled was I with the guilt I had drawn about me like

a cloak. Since it was because of me Joisan had come here at her great peril, what part of any rescue venture belonged to these two? I was willing only to welcome anger— and to turn it against others since I burned with it myself.

Then the Wisewoman added: "Her way was our way—of free choice. We are not about

to turn from it, now that it has brought this upon her. If you choose not to ride in our company, that is for you to decide. Still we shall go."

How had Joisan so tied these two to her? Or—suspicion crawled where anger had opened a way—were they indeed Imgry's eyes ready to turn me from my road when they had the chance? Well enough. I could watch and wait, be all fair words and

thanks, and still keep my own path. Unless…

This Elys had the Power, and through that might be a way to my lady. I could not

disdain any chance, however small, of a guide.

"You speak," I said, "as if you have a road in mind. But how can that be?"

Something of eagerness broke the right cover I tried to force on my feelings.

Had I been jealous in part because these two had been my lady's friends when I

had left her without any outward show of feeling? I clenched my hands at my sides until my nails cut into the softer flesh of my palms.

"I know nothing of Thas—save they are of the earth. But…"

I remembered! By the Warmth of the Flame and the Flash of Gender's Spell Sword,

in that moment I remembered!

"The mountains! The Werelord said their dens were known to be among the mountains!" I swung about, but even the brightness of the moon could not show me

now these distant ridges against the far sky.

"The mountains it is then," Jervon said, much as one speaks of riding to a market to price wool, though I was sure he was not as pragmatic as he sounded.

This was a time when I could not, for Joisan's sake, push aside any suggestion

of aid. I must accept what was offered and be grateful—honestly grateful—that it

was given.

I had thought that I could not sleep, that I must lie and remember too much—and

fear far more. However, sometimes the body defeats the mind and brings it under

domination. I found that my eyelids grew heavy and…

No—I did not dream. Or if I did… But I did not! It was no dream—nor was it any

sorcery summoned up by Elys in some mistaken hope perhaps of lightening my inner

burden. I was sitting up, my hands half raised to my head. There was the moon and the stars, and around me the dark. I could hear the rasping sound made by a

grazing horse not too far away.

"Joisan!" I scrambled up, blundered forward a step or two— my hands outstretched

to grasp something—someone—who was not there. "Joisan…"

She had been there, or here—or…

I rubbed my forehead dazedly. Out of the dark I heard movement, whirled about.

"Joisan!"

"No."

A single word of denial. One that I was hot to dispute.

"I—I saw her." I stammered. "She was here, I tell you!"

"He is ensorcelled?" It was Jervon's deep voice in the night. Then came an answer from the Wisewoman.

"He could not be—not with such a safeguard as he wears."

There was a glitter of ice blue, the band on my wrist. Of course it had not been

sorcery! I had seen Joisan—she had stood with bared head, her hair clotted with

earth, smears of it across her face. There had been wonder in her eyes and between us—the gryphon! I had seen her.

I must have repeated that, for Elys replied to words I did not remember uttering.

"A true sending. It was surely a true sending."

A sending! I shook my head, tried to believe that my sight of her had been more

than a willed vision. But once more logic awakened in me. I dropped down on the

ground, clasped my head between my hands—then changed and held the wrist with its band flat against my forehead. I closed my eyes and tried with all the force

I could summon, all the will I knew, to reach out—to touch—to see… Only there was no answer—nothing hut the moon above and the black land below.

A hand rested on my shoulder. I strove to shake it off but the clasp clung.

"Let be!" Elys spoke with authority. "This is no land in which to open any gates. Let be—I do not think you are an utter fool!"

Did I indeed feel in that moment, even as she spoke, that something—a faint trace—a sensation that my frantic searching had touched what should not be disturbed except by fools? I could not tell—though I shivered as I might have had a breath of v. inter wind swept across the gully and wrapped itself about my

shoulders in a lash-cut. I dropped my hand, stared hard-eyed into the dark, knowing that my chance was gone and I would have no value to Joisan should I now—as Elys had pointed out—play the fool.

Perhaps I had never before been driven so… unless it was when I had trailed Rogear into the Waste. The ferment within me urged me on and on during the next

two days. Had I traveled alone I might neither have eaten nor slept—until I fell

from the saddle of a horse ridden near to death. Still it seemed that the heights toward which we headed never drew any closer. My worst tear rode with me, that suspicion that perhaps we had chosen wrongly, that we were not heading

toward my lady, but away.

Was it that constant nag of fear that brought back the dreams? I never returned

in sleep to that place where the gryphon-man lay. Mostly I was in the company of

those whose faces I could not clearly see, whose murmuring voices I did not understand, yet in me strained the need to both see and hear. From such dreams I

awoke as weak in body as if I had run for a day, sweat heavy and sticky on my body.

I did not tell my companions of these dreams. In fact I spoke very little.

Still

striving to free my mind from a prison of dark thoughts, I made myself watch both of them. I asked no questions concerning their past, though such questions

began to crowd my mind.

Elys was a Wisewoman, more than that—for she wore the mail of a warrior with practiced ease and I saw that a sword was as familiar to her as it was to anyone

who was trained in such usage for many years. Thus she was a strange puzzle—for

Wisewomen and weapons have never consorted together from all I had ever heard.

By her appearance she was not of Dalesblood; perhaps her talent therefore was the stronger. Yet her tie with Jervon was very close and easy, acceptable to both. Jervon, though he was plainly of keep-kin, had no visible taint of the Old

Ones—and I did not believe he was one who bore my own curse. Together they traveled without many words between them, but I was more and more aware that theirs was so strong a bond that at times it seemed as if one could read the mind of the other.

It was Jervon who interested me the most. All Dalespeople accepted Wisewomen—after a fashion. Those are born of our own blood with a talent they enlarge by learning. A girl with such a gift apprenticed herself early to one well practiced in herb lore, in minor Power control. She was thus set apart from

childhood, knowing thereafter no kin-tie, even among those of her birth family,

making no marriage, rearing no child, unless she in turn took an apprentice.

Her

knowledge was her whole life.

A Wisewoman's arts are of healing and peace. None goes armed, none speaks of battle as Elys had made mention of skirmishes and alerts, inquiring of me how went Imgry's training of the new forces. She was two things—each opposed to the

other. How could this be?

Also, how could Jervon, who lacked any pretense of talent, accept her so wholly,

feeling none of the aversion that was bred into all Dalesmen—that wariness, the

latent fear of the unknown raised by the constant awareness that we dwelt in a

land which was not truly our own?

This alliance of theirs—my thoughts returned ever to the strangeness of it—was

by Dale standards unexplainable. Jervon was neither servant nor guard, that I had learned early during this endless ride west. They were equals in spite of their differences. Could one take two such opposing people—as one would take two

different metals—and forge from their uniting a third stronger, more powerful than either alone?

Jervon accepted Elys for what she was. Could anyone so accept—me, in the same fashion?

They both spoke of Joisan, not as if they wished to add to my burden, but naturally, as if she had been brought into that shared companionship of theirs.

There came a time (did my face so reveal my inner struggles) that Elys broke the

silence in which I rode with an abrupt comment.

"She wished for more."

Anger touched me, and then bewilderment. More of what? Lands? Heritage? For both

of us those had been swept away by the fortunes of the war. I had given her her

full freedom—I held her by no promise. What then was "more"?

It this clear-eyed warrior woman could indeed reach into the turmoil of my thoughts, did she not realize that I knew Joisan was something apart, precious—something I could not bind to me. Being what I was I would ask nothing.

Not all were as accepting as she—as Jervon…

"Men fear that which has no substance, better they should look with clear eyes,

open minds," Elys continued. "Joisan told me of your heritage, that you deemed

it a dire thing you cannot escape. But have you not already faced it in part—faced and defeated it?"

"I did not defeat it. Lady," I flared up in answer. "What I wrought was against

enemies—enemies who had taken my lady to bend to their will. Nor did I alone do

that thing. There was another Power that took a hand—which used me as one uses a

sword. Am I then to be commended? Because I am what I am, I was only a doorway…"

Memory moved. Who—what—had I been at that moment when a Power that certainly I

had not summoned had turned against Rogear and my mother? I had not been Kerovan

then, but another—another who was greater, stronger, whole in spirit—

everything

I was not, as I knew when he had withdrawn, and had never been nor could hope to

be.

"Be not so swift to deny," she countered. "There are often skills that lie sleeping within one until destiny—and need—awakens and draws them forth. You think meanly of yourself and"—there was a note in her tone that brought a flush

to my cheek, a hot retort to my lips though I did not so interrupt her—"perhaps

you find that to so think is a protection, a ward against doing what you were born to do. One cannot stand in the end against one's fate."

To that I made no answer seeing that if I spoke now what I deemed to be the truth she might only say again that I hid behind an excuse, as she had just accused me of doing. Nor did I find that I liked either of these two the more (for I brooded upon my conviction that they found in me perhaps not the monster

the Dales would name me, but someone so poor-spirited that I was not of the breed to have honestly earned Joisan's regard). Perhaps I should have been glad

of that verdict, seeing that it would afford me an added excuse to hold aloof—when and if my lady was safely found. Only, contrarily, its affect upon me

now was to arouse a determination to prove that I was not less than Jervon in my

ability to accept. Though the acceptance would never be mine—it was Joisan's.

On the second day the country began to change—even as desert had given way earlier to grassland—though the hills still seemed farther away. While we did not see again any such silent and thick wood as the Wereriders' sanctuary, there

were more trees. Also, we forded one good-sized river, making our way across on

the remains of a stone bridge, enough of which still stood above water to give

us dry footing.

Hereabouts were signs that this land had once been under cultivation, perhaps very fertile. There were fallow fields walled with stones set skillfully in place, and twice we sighted towers standing as watch points. We made no attempt

to explore these, for their surroundings suggested that they had been long abandoned, and there was a fever burning, in me at least, to keep pushing on.

In midaftemoon of the second day we came near a third such tower, only this was

surrounded by a clump of dark trees (most of which were unseasonably bare of leaf, but with branches so matted and entwined as to form another kind of defense). The band on my wrist warmed. I pulled back my mail sleeve to see it emitting blue sparks, visible even in the sunlight. Elys reined up, watched that

tower as one looked upon a defended enemy position. She had caught her lower lip

between her teeth and a frown of concentration drew her brows closer together.

"Swing out!" she ordered, emphasizing that with a gesture to her left. "Can you

not also feel it?"

Perhaps because I had been for so many hours wrapped in my own thoughts, I had

not been too much aware of what was round about. Now her command startled me into attention. I hunched my shoulders, tightened grip on the reins so that the

mare sidled under me. It was as if an unexpected blow had struck out of the very

air—one I had no means of countering.

The only words I can find to describe what chanced are that in that moment I had

been attacked by a wave of pure evil. Evil is the only name for the foulness of

it. Cold it was, wholly inimical to my kind of life, or at least to that part of

me that could claim kinship with humanity. I sensed a subtle movement in my mind, a feeble assault, as if what had launched that blow (perhaps intending invasion) had been drained through centuries until its force was only a faint shadow of what it had once been. Something coiled out there behind the dark of

the trees, the tumble of stone, something full of poison against the soul, as an

adder is lull of poison to discharge against living flesh.

We rode on, making a wide circle around that ill-inhabited place. However, we had not gone far (though the pressure I had felt had faded entirely away) when

there came the sound of wild screeching. Coiling up from the tower, in the form

of a giant serpent rearing to strike, came a spiral of birds.

Once aloft they wheeled, to fly directly at us. I saw, as they drew near, that

they were of the same breed as those foul scavengers I had found at the desert

oasis. Their raw red heads, armed with those murderous curved beaks, were stretched forward like spears, aimed at us.

Arriving just above us, they circled, continuing to screech, a clamor loud enough to hurt the ears. From the flock some darted down, two and three at a time, skimming just above our heads. I had flung up my arm in an intuitive gesture of protection and the hand on my wrist blazed like leaping flames.

Our

horses went wild, screaming in pure fear, tossing their heads frantically, as if

they expected that their eyes were about to be plucked out of their skulls.

There was no trying to hold them. Instead we gave them their heads and they ran,

directly west, until we came to cover under a stand of trees. The birds followed, settling on branches above, still shrieking what may have been dire threats in their own tongue.

However, the branches prevented them from attacking us, and they raised stronger

cries of rage and frustration. We discovered, as we threaded a way among the trees, that those winged demons did not seem disposed to follow beyond the very

edge of the wood.

It was our hope, though there was no path, that we were not wandering in circles

as we ducked down in our saddles to avoid being brushed out of them by low-hanging branches. Such ferocity in an attack made by winged things was new

to me, and I marveled that they had not scored us with beak and talon. They might well have been trained, as were falcons of the Dales schooled, to hunt on

command—or else they themselves possessed both a malicious form of intelligence

and a purpose in harrying us.

"I trust," Jervon commented, throwing out an arm to ward off a branch, "that they will not be awaiting us when we reach the other side of this cover.

Never

had I thought birds were creatures to fear. But those—they could and would tear

a man's face from his skull—given the chance."

"Your ward is strong," Elys spoke to me, and nodded to the wrist band. It still

shone, but the Tire that had awakened to life there as we had approached that tower was less brilliant. "However, what lay there was not only birds…" She turned her head a little to one side as if she were listening.

All I could hear were the cries of feathered attackers growing steadily fainter

as we drew away. I regarded the band of the Old One's metal with the same thankfulness a warrior, pushed to a last stand, looks upon his sword. I had been

very well served since chance had brought it to me.

"No," Elys continued. "Something more than birds laired in that place. Though whether it is strong enough to leave its den and come into the open by daylight…

Most things of the Dark use the night for their cover—unless they are masters of

evil arts.

That… force is no longer strong as it once was. But I think that we had better

set as much distance between us and its lurking place as we can before we camp."

We made a slow passage but we did win at least to the other side of the covering

wood. No birds had flown above to lie in wait as we had half feared. What we discovered was something tar different—a broad road, better laid than any of those in the Dales, showing only small signs of erosion at the extreme edges of

the smooth surface.

The highway came up from the south, but at the very point where we emerged from

among the trees, it took a sharp, curving turn to the west. On either side it had been cleared of tall growth, so that anything or anyone traveling there would proceed in clear sight—an idea I did not find very much to my present taste.

I had seen a similar highway once before. The Road of Exile, which led into the

Waste not far from Ulmsdale, resembled this. It had served those Old Ones who had passed from the Dales into a place and future we knew nothing of. Never would I forget how Riwal and I had sheltered from a sudden storm in a ruin standing beside that road and the vision that had come to me that night—the march of the Old Ones, only half seen—but felt, yes—felt! That heavy sorrow, which had sent them roving, arose from their ghostly passing to touch me and turn the whole world into a place of loss and heartbreak.

Here, however, lay a brightness, which that other road had lacked. Age had lain

heavy on the path of the Exiles; here abode a feeling that this highway might still be in use, that at any moment a party of warriors, a train of merchants'

ponies, might come trotting into view.

Elys slipped from her saddle and Jervon gathered up the reins she released.

She

walked forward until the very toes of her boots touched the slight crumbling of

the surface edge. There she stood for a very long moment, neither looking up nor

down the way, but rather with her head bent, studying the surface itself with care, as if she sought some lost object that might lie there.

Out of curiosity I followed her, my mare treading behind me as I hauled on the

reins. A moment later I, too, sighted what had caught and so held her attention.

The actual surface of the road was unbroken and smooth.

However, inlaid in it were many symbols, arranged so that any who walked or rode

upon it must, of necessity, tread on them in passing.

Some were undoubtedly runes, unreadable, as far as I knew, to any now living.

Once more I was reminded forcibly of Riwal, of how he had spent most of his life

in eager search for a clue that would unlock for him the knowledge scattered in

the Waste.

Among the markings of the runes were also designs that had no resemblance to writing. I saw stars of Power, their five points always filled with symbols.

There were also silver outlines of footprints, not only of men (or some race nearly human) but also of beasts—hoofprints, the pad marks of what must have been outsized cats, the pointed toes of birds.

These last, judging by their length, must also have been giants of their species. The prints and the star points both glistened under the sun rays as if

they were inset with some burnished metal, or even with tiny gems, though there

was no color other than the silver of the Moon's mirror about them.

Elys knelt, holding her hand out, palm down, over the point of one of the stars

that was not too far from the edge of the pavement. She did not touch the surface of the road, merely moved her hand slowly back and forth. For some reason I could not understand, I was drawn to kneel and copy her gesture. In turn I put out my right hand.

My wrist band warmed gently, though it did not continue to blaze into fire as it

had when we neared the tower of the birds. And—there came a calming, an easement

of my mind and spirit. No one did actually stand now behind me with a comrade's

hand laid on my shoulder. Still it seemed to me that I had this comfort, that what we had found here, sorcery as it surely was, held no terror or possible harm—might in fact work for our future good. I said as much.

Elys got lightly to her feet.

"This is indeed our way," she said soberly. If she had felt the same touch of comfort as had come to me she did not show it in either face or voice, for she

spoke as one who faces a task or a test. "This holds a power meant to protect those who travel. We have perhaps been led here without our realizing it. The Old Ones have many mysteries and secrets—it could be that we have, in some manner, been selected to be hands and feet for them—for the doing of a task.

If

this is the way of it then the road is their reassurance—safety for us."

I wanted instantly to protest that I was no one's servant— either that of a Power or a lord. Though I had come at Imgry's bidding, it had been of my own choice. The belief that I might be now used by another was one I resented hotly.

Joisan was my only concern. I was back at the side of my mare, ready to mount and ride—not to. but away from this road to which we had been led—if Elys guessed rightly. Only—where would I ride? And—Joisan…

Elys looked over her shoulder, directly into my eyes.

" You fight, thus wasting your strength; accept and hoard that. Do not believe

that I also do not know what it is to be a stranger among all who are kin to one

another. Once I had a father, a brother—neither could nor would accept me for what I am. I learned that through hardship and heart sorrow. You must also find

your road and then hold to it. There are no easy paths for such as us."

Perhaps something in my expression silenced her. She still gazed at me and then

turned away, and I did not look after her or speak. This was my own battle that

I must face.

In the Dales I knew that I was distrusted—hated—for what I was. I had managed to

set that behind me for a space, just as I had left Imgry and his camp. At that

moment I still longed—in a pan of me—to ride away, turn my back on the road and

all that it stood for, even on these two who had learned a secret for living cruelly denied to me, a secret I was perhaps not even wishful to learn. That was

the human part of me. What if I forgot the Kerovan who was? What would be my way

now? Would it lie as straight as the road heading toward those distant heights—taking me out of the past?

And Joisan—but, no, Joisan was not to be left in the past, she was not to be forgotten. She was—I must admit it to myself now if I never did to any other—she

was all that was real now in my world.

Joisan

I STOOD ON STONE AND IT WAS SOLID UNDER ME. I FELT THE COOL OF the breeze that

tugged at the ragged, earth-smeared loops of my hair where the braids had come

apart, I heard the nervous twittering and calls of the birds. All this I could

believe in. But the rest—could one walk half in, half out of some spell?

There

had been enough behind me in the past hours that could lead me to believe that I

might indeed no longer be able to think straight and clearly.

"Untaught—and no longer a cub. There is nothing but folly in such a one." A new

voice in my head, a contemptuous voice. "It was not so in the other days."

Slowly I went to my knees that my eyes might be on a closer line with the bland

gaze meeting mine. Beyond the cat, the bear yawned, its small eyes ignoring me.

Surely—surely it had been the bear that thought-spoke that time!

These—these animals—I had no other way to name those who transferred speech directly into my mind—how… I fought down my fear. This was the Waste, I must always remember that and be warned. In a place where remnants of Power had been

loosed for more generations than my people had built and lived in the Dales, how

could I—dare I—marvel at anything that I might encounter here? Cats—a bear—who

thought-spoke—these were no more extraordinary than the means by which I had been lifted out of an earth-walled prison into this outer world again.

"I—can—not speak—as—you—do…"I returned haltingly.

Now the smaller cat yawned with the same boredom the bear had shown. "Why state

that which is so plainly true?"

That had come in direct answer to my speech! I had not fallen easy prey to hallucination, unless it was so strong a one, or a spell, that it carried this

semblance of reason.

"Allow me time." I did not wonder at my pleading with the cat; at that moment it

seemed very natural. At least there was my old liking for its kind to make this

easier. I still distrusted the bear. "I thought I knew a little of your people—but this—"

"Our people?" There was disdain in that. "You have never met with our people, witling." The yellow eyes narrowed a little. "Our like does not live with yours—or has not for more years than it has taken these walls to loose their stones."

I searched for an apology. It was plain that if this cat knew of those who roamed Dale keeps, it considered itself of a different breed altogether.

"Your pardon," I said hurriedly. "I have seen some like unto you. They are of the Dales. But I do not know you, and if I have offended, then please understand

it is done in ignorance."

"Ignorance? If you are ignorant why then do you wear the key? That opens doors

without, minds within." Now the voice was impatient as well as condescending.

My

furred questioner plainly found me one she considered of inferior intelligence—I

deduced that this was the female of the pair.

The gryphon! A key—Neevor had said so. My hand closed about the globe. It would

seem that even these chance-met animals knew more than I about what I carried.

I

wondered if they could tell me, but, before I could search for the proper words,

that other voice growled into my mind.

"It is time for eating, not talking. This one has no Power, is indeed a witling.

Let it go away and stop troubling us. What it does with itself is no concern of

ours."

The bear had gotten up onto four feet, was swinging around toward the same wall

gap through which I had earlier come. Now it lumbered toward it, never looking

back, plainly divorcing itself from me and my concerns. Still neither of the cats seemed inclined to follow it.

I had found the words for my explanation, very glad that that red-brown body had

disappeared. It was far easier for me to feel more comfortable—or as much at ease as my situation would allow—with the cats alone.

"I do not know the Powers of the Old Ones—perhaps the ones who once lived here…"

I gestured about the courtyard. "This"—I held the globe out a fraction so that

the sun shown full on the gryphon within—"was a gift from my lord. It has powers, that is true, but I am not one trained to use them. I do not even know

what they may be. Please—can you tell me where is this place—and why—or how…"

I

floundered.

One part of me stood aside in pure wonder at what I did, that I sat on my heels

and strove to talk to a cat. The rest of me urged that this was the only way for

me to learn what might be of great importance to me—that I could no longer live

by Dale ways or judge by Dale standards, but must accept all that came, no matter how impossible some of it might seem.

More than cats—yes. And I—was I less than any like me they might have once known? I suspected as much.

The smaller of the two—the female—still watched me with that unwinking stare.

She weighed me by some standards of her own and I suspected that I was so discovered to be sadly wanting.

"You say you do not know how to use the Key, yet you came here by the ———"

The

concept, which followed words I did understand, was one to now leave me completely baffled. I had a faint impression of what might be wings beating the

air, but that passed through my mind so swiftly I could not be sure I was correct.

"I was trapped underground," I explained, as I would to another person had I been welcomed into the ruins by one of my own kind. So I told my story—of the whirlpool in the earth, of the place of dark, of how I had beaten off the creatures and then found my escape by way of the gryphon, which, as I talked, I

held cupped in my hand. To touch it so gave me strength, a feeling of reality, a

link with the world I had always known.

I described the chamber of the low walls, and of how I had lain down in the middle of it, only to find myself transported here. While I talked the two cats

watched me, nor did either of them use mind speech to comment upon, or to interrupt my tale.

"So I found myself out there." I pointed to the gap through which the bear had

gone—to that overgrown garden where I had discovered food and drink.

"'It is true—you are as blind as a newborn kitten." The female again. "You play

with things beyond your knowing. All you do know is that you are hungry and that

you want to find your way out—that you—"

"Kittens learn." A milder mind-voice cut through this petulant recital of my lacks. "She will learn. Remember, it takes her kind much longer to grow from kitten to hunter—'

"Meanwhile she meddles foolishly with that which could bring notice—trouble for

not only her, but for others. It has been very long since any one used the———"

(again those words which had no meaning for me). "How can we be sure that the alarm of that has not belled, to awaken much it is better not to have any dealings with? Let her go and take her Key. That in itself is bait enough for many a Dark One. Such need only sense its presence with a least hint—and then—!"

The cat before me raised a paw, pads spread a little so that the claws (which were formidable looking even in this smaller animal) hooked out into the open.

A

threat—I thought—or at least a firm warning.

Her mate arose and stretched forefeet well before him after the manner of his kind.

"So the Thas are setting traps." His comment meant nothing to me. The female looked around at him, her eyes became slits, her lips wrinkled back to display

fangs as sharp as her claws.

"Earth-worms!" Now she spat. "Since when do such crawlers dare face the light?"

"Since when have they stirred at all—this side of the Barrier— after the Spell

of the Hour was set? Their earth-moving has not spread hither for a long time.

Nor have they dared leave the Range of Shifting Shadows. This one certainly did

not draw them; they were already burrowing where they had no right to be. Who knows what they plan in their murky, earth-slimed minds? Or who gives them orders? For they dare not the Light unless there is some strong will urging them

on."

His .range of questions apparently struck his mate as having importance—though

they meant very little to me. She set her paw back on the ground and her attention shifted from me to him. I tried hard to sort out from the information

I had so gained what I could.

Thas—that name I impressed in my mind. It must be that of the creatures I had battled in the dark. They had been formidable surely and I could still bring to

mind the memory of their claws reaching for me. Yet—now I was a little startled

at the realization— they had not pulled me down as easily as they were armed to

do. I did not believe that it was my flapping efforts with that belt that had held them at bay.

"The gryphon." I was thinking aloud rather than addressing myself to the cats.

"They were afraid of the gryphon's light. Then they were whistled away—"

"That is so. And who whistled? It was the Key that defeated their first purpose—perhaps was a bane also to that which loosed them at you," the male cat

assented. "Do not forget the Key. Whether you dealt with it out of knowledge or

out of fear and need, you have used it—and it brought you here." He looked to his mate, and I believed they were exchanging some confidence that was close to

me.

The female growled deep in her throat. I thought that that warning or protest was not aimed at me. Now she drew back to the doorway beside her mate,

"settling

herself as if she were withdrawing from proceedings that were not to her liking.

The male spoke to me again.

"You are not of the old blood, nor are you one of those who come seeking what they call 'treasure'—bits and pieces of things— some of which are better forgotten. Them we have seen—and small value do they get for all their grubbing.

The real things of Power are near all safe-hidden. Why then have you come into

this land, bringing that with you which can arouse both Light and Dark?"

"I seek my lord." So I told them the other portion of my story as I might, and

had in part, to Elys and Jervon. Elys—Jervon— my mind turned to them. Had they

also been caught in the snare of the Thas? I had not found them in that place of

utter dark— but that did not mean they had gone free. For their sakes I hoped that I had been the only one so completely entrapped.

Thus I spoke of Kerovan, and when I mentioned that he shared heritage with the

Old Ones, the male cat drew a step or two closer, as if this was of importance

and he must hear every word. I talked of Neevor—and that name wrought a change

in both animals. Once more they looked one to the other in silent communication.

Now the female mind-spoke.

"Trouble—trouble indeed. Old truces broken if that One has interested himself in

this. An ill day for all of us if the sleeping wake—there will be more than Trias overrunning, or underrunning this land."

"Neevor cannot be of the Dark Ones!" I challenged her for the first time. I was

sure of what I said.

"That is very true. Only we have had peaceful years in which Dark and Light did

not strive against one another, drawing even the least of us into their battles.

Each, long ago, withdrew to their chosen strongholds and did not trouble with us, who bear no allegiance to either, as long as we did not intrude upon them.

Now the Thas move, they lay traps. Those worms of the deep earth obey orders—whose orders? You speak of one who calls himself Neevor—upon occasion—telling us that he wanders abroad and takes action. This lord of yours—what is he?"

Her eyes once more narrowed to slits and her ears had flattened slightly against

her skull, but she did not snarl. Instead she voiced an order, sharply, as one

who is well used to being obeyed.

Show me the Key, show it to me closely!"

Before I thought, so imperative was her demand, I slipped the chain over my head

and held out my hand, the globe resting in the hollow of my palm. Within that crystal, not clouded now with any radiance, the gryphon was plain to be seen.

I

had a strange fancy, lasting for a breath or two, that the small image held a form of life, that it made contact with the two cats who paced forward and stood

with their noses close to the ball.

"Sooooo." That was like a hiss in my brain. "He is that one!"

The male spoke first. The head of the female was still outstretched, her attitude one of sniffing, as if the ball gave forth an odor, which it was imperative that she detect.

"It cannot be!" She jerked back her head. "The time for that is long past—the very way forgotten. Not even Neevor can walk into that hall and greet him who sleeps there. Sleeps? Surely not—too many seasons have come and gone—the life force must have departed out of him long since!"

"It is true"—the male paid no attention to his mate's comment, rather mind-spoke

me—"that you do not know what you hold. There is more to the Key than any one of

us can sense—it is a very special Key. No wonder the———" (again those words I knew not) "brought you here! If that Power awakes again, indeed the hills shall

dance, the rivers turn in their beds, and the very land will be rewoven."

"Take it from her!" demanded the female. "Take it and cast it into some pit—or

better still—set it under a stone. Turn her out… Such a thing is not for this witling to play with, or for anyone to hold!" Now she did openly snarl and her

paw arose with lightning speed to hook what I held out from my fingers. I jerked

the globe back against my breast just in time.

"We cannot take away what has been given." But there was a growl sounding from

the male's throat even as his thought-words reached me. "GIVEN—remember?"

"She can loose—she can use—" Now the female's thought-speech ended. Instead the

squawl of a cat about to launch itself into a fight arose.

The male shouldered between us, even as his mate crouched to spring. I had hurriedly once more dropped the chain over my head.

"If you tell me what you know of this—of how I may use it safely," I began, eyeing the female warily. She was no snow cat to be sure, a huntress large enough to bring down a horse, kill an unwary human. Still, her mounting fury, linked with those claws and fangs, could cause grievous hurts if she indeed sprang for me.

"No!" The male made answer. "There are many Powers, one does not play with any.

Perhaps it was meant that what you hold should be returned to this land in the

guardianship of one who is ignorant. On your head will the consequences be, only

if it is loosed. This much we must grant you as long as you wear that—you may shelter here."

"In safety?" I looked with meaning from him to the furious female.

He moved a fraction forward, urging her also with his shoulder.

"From us you need fear nothing. We do not strive to meddle."

The female growled, but her anger was plainly fading. She sent no other thought

to me. Her mate added, "This place is safe—for now—if we give consent.

Rest—and

wait. There must be some plan in which you are to play a part—or Neevor would not have moved. No, chance does not send the Thas into making traps—bring him who is your lord hither—give you the right to wear and use—that."

Now the female did speak.

"We have no part in such plans, we want none!"

"We may believe now we have no part," he corrected her. "We are not movers and

shakers, doers and undoers—but many times such, even as we, are entangled in the

nets of Great Ones. Let be! In truth, by the old promise and the covent, having

come hither by the———" (those words once more), "you have a right to claim refuge. You have followed a road long unused but none the less important.

Yes"—now his eyes slitted in turn—"we are not kin, nor comrade ones to your kind, nor have we, in many years, sworn aid to anyone. But because you have come

to us by certain ways we are bound to shelter you. You are free to stay, or go,

whichever you wish."

Abruptly then he vanished in a long, graceful bound, the female swift behind him, leaving me alone in the ruined courtyard as the sun sank behind the heights, its light lost in the shadow of what had once been a watch tower.

Wait—he had said wait. For what—or whom? I did not altogether like the sound of

that. Had it been really a command? He had also said that I could go at my desire, though I was not about to strike out across this countryside among growing shadows and the coming dark of night.

There was no evil here and it was shelter of a sort. I cupped the globe tightly

between my hands. What I had heard was tantalizing, but that I could get any more information out of the cats was doubtful. Oddly enough, now that they were

gone, a loneliness touched me. There was no fear—just that emptiness.

I looked at the gaping doors. No, I had no mind to enter into that place. I would spend this night right here in the courtyard under the open sky.

So I harvested armloads of grass, pulled from the thick growth in what had been

the garden. This I made into a nestlike bed. Once more I ate berries, found a small stream of water and drank my fill, washed my hands and face, combed all I

could of the soil from my hair, and made up my mind to try to wash it clean with

the coming of the morning.

I would have liked to have set a fire—I had a spark-striker in my belt pouch—but

I sought no wood for one. It seemed more prudent to me that the dark of the courtyard remain. I wanted no advertisement of my presence. The cats had said this was a safe refuge but I did not want to test the truth of that. What they

might deem enemies and what I could fear might be two different things altogether.

As I stretched out on my bed, my arms beneath my head, looking up into the darkening sky, I sought to plan what I must do when morning came. The cat's word—that I was to wait—I did not care for that… unless I had some idea of what

I waited for. On the other hand, without any guide, supplies, horses—what was I

to do? To go wandering off, without any aim, across a land that was far more hostile than it looked—that indeed would be rank folly.

It seemed to me, now that I had a period in which to think through events since

I had left Norsdale, that so far I had been singularly favored by fortune.

The

meeting with Elys and Jervon— had that really happened by chance alone? Or had

I, by my choice in Norsdale, my determination to cling to Kerovan, set in motion

a series of events that linked, one with the other, to foster some action determined by a will beyond my reckoning?

It is never pleasant to believe that one is moved here or there by that which one does not understand. As a child I had come and gone at the bidding of my uncle or Dame Math. Then later I had been the one to give orders, to decide the

fates of more than myself when I led the survivors of Ithdale into the wilderness. I had many times been uncertain of my own judgment. Still I had had

to make decisions and sometimes quickly, so that I grew more confident and sure

of myself.

My lord had never said do this, do that. Though according to Dales law I was as

much his servant as the youngest serving wench in his hall. He had stood beside

me, been like my right hand or my left when there was need, but never intruded

his own orders unless such was for our good, and then in such a way that his suggestion came not as a direct command, but rather as if I, too, must see the

logic of it even as he did.

Was it the Waste and its ghostly shadows that now made me doubt my independence—think that perhaps after all I had made no real choice that was of

my own wishing? How far back did such an influence then exist?

Had it come about long years ago when my uncle chose my lord—when I, a child of

eight, was axe-wedded to a boy I had never seen? Or did the entanglement, which

I now feared existed, start when my unknown husband had sent me the gryphon?

Or

did it follow after the invaders' attack upon Ithdale? Or—had our fates been decided even in the hour of our births?

Did any living thing have complete freedom of choice in this eerie country—or was what I had said to Elys the truth, that we who were born here had other heritage than human, were bound to Powers whether we knew it or not?

I knew that there was only one major truth in my life, and that was that Kerovan

and I were meant to be one in the same manner as Elys and Jervon—each bringing

to that unity different gifts and talents—so that the whole was greater. That Kerovan would not, or could not, admit this, did not release me, nor would it ever. No words of his, no action he might take, could make me other than I was.

Shutting my eyes upon the sky, L drew into my mind the memory of his face.

The

vision had not faded any during the many days we had been apart. I saw him as clearly now as I had on that morning in Norsdale, when he had put aside all I offered to ride away, as clearly as I had when trapped in the cave I had sought

and had seen him. Now I strained to bring about once more that, only it did not

come, no matter how much I willed it.

With Kerovan thus with me in memory, the only way I could hold him now, I drifted into sleep, holding fiercely to this small piece of comfort—the single

one I knew.

I was warm—I must have slept too near the fire. Trying to edge away from the heat, I opened my eyes upon a dazzle of sunlight, which struck full upon me, turning my mail into a highly uncomfortable covering. As I sat up, my hair caught and tangled with the withered grasses on which I had slept, and I tried

to shake that mass free as I looked, heavy-eyed, about me.

From the high position of the sun I must have slept clear through the night and

well into the next morning. The birds still flew in and out of the vines, making

a rising din with their chirpings and song. Otherwise the courtyard was deserted. There was no sign of either cats or bear.

My body ached. Though there was the padded jerkin between my body and the mail,

still I missed the under-shirt I had torn in the cavern. I itched and felt as unkempt and dirty as any vagabond. I longed for cleanliness of skin, for fresh

clothing. If I only had the saddlebags I had left in the camp the Thas had engulfed!

I arose slowly, stretching, wanting to feel more alert and lithe of limb.

Once

on my feet, I stood with my hands on my hips looking about.

This ruin must have long been just that—an abiding place for only birds and animals. Today, in the warmth of the sun, I no longer sensed that feeling of intrusion that had come upon me when I first entered the courtyard. This was only a shell from which life had long departed.

"Halloooo?" I did not know just why I tried that call. My voice was not loud, but it echoed emptily in a way that kept me from trying a second call. The cats—almost I could believe that I had dreamed them—still I knew that I had not.

Before I went to seek food and water I determined to know more of this place and

I eyed the nearer tower speculatively. If the flooring within it remained intact

I should be able to climb to a point high enough to see more of the country.

That survey was imperative before I made even the shortest of plans ahead.

Thus I stepped through the door, which had the hanging fragments of a one-time

barrier. Within, the sunlight was abruptly cut to dusk. The windows, even though

no shutters remained, no parchment covered their openness, still admitted very

little light, while the walls between the windows (which were wide on the courtyard side and narrowed to slits on the other) were bare stone. There were

no remains of any furnishings save a couple of long benches—each fashioned to resemble an elongated cat—the head upstanding at one end, the tail erect at the

other, the four supporting feet ending in clawed paws.

One of these was set against the far wall and I mounted on it to peer out of the

narrow window. The same vines that overhung the courtyard also grew here in profusion and I could see very little through the veil they formed.

The floor of this large chamber was covered by paw marks in the dust—those of the cats, and some that could belong only to the bear, while there was also a strong animal smell in the room, though it had not been used as a general lair,

for there were no beds of drifted leaves, no signs of the inedible parts of prey.

I passed under the archway, which gave into the lowest floor of the tower, and

found what I had hoped, a stairway leading up, one side against the wall. The other, which lacked any guard rail, was open, while the steps were unusually narrow, hardly wide enough to take the length of my boots, and the rises were not as high as one would expect. However, the stones were sturdily set, though I

tested each before I placed my full weight upon it.

So I climbed, emerging into another chamber as bare as the one below. Then, finally, into a third above that. Here were more window slits, and I made my way

toward the closest through even deeper gloom, for the vines were thick curtains

I had to push, break, and tear in order to force an opening through which I might view what lay beyond.

It would seem that this hall had been built with one side just above the edge of

a sharp, down-dropping slope. There were trees rooted precariously on it, as well as a lot of brush, but where it reached the level at last, the land was wide open.

Across that, as straight as if someone had used a sword blade to cut a path—the

tip of which touched heights to the west—was what could only be a road. Only this was such a road as I had never seen in the Dales, where tracks, of necessity, were narrow because of the many ridges.

Not only was it dazzling white under the sun, but broad and very smooth, though

there were glints of glitter on its surface, flashing now and then. The highway

lacked any travelers as far as I could see. It was just there—startling on that

dull plain. There were wide stretches of open ground on each side as if all cover had been deliberately pruned away. To discourage ambush? But who had come

this way in such fear—and against what or whom had those wayfarers needed to so

protect themselves?

Kerovan

THIS ROAD, WHICH I KNEW AS WELL AS ELYS DID, WAS NO TRACK such as ran through the Dales. It carried the mark of sorcery even more than that which the Exiles

had used, and it ran toward the heights. Though I had determined to ride west,

now I was reluctant to set out upon such a way, easy as it was to travel. Not so

my companions, for remounted, Elys swung out upon the pavement, nor did Jervon

linger, but was at her side, the pack pony on a lead, already past me.

I mounted the mare, fighting inner turmoil. To take such a path was to expose myself to—to what? Was I such a one now as started at shadows, drew steel at the

sloughing of a wind through tree branches? This shaming fact I could not yield

to. I sent the mare on, where the click of her shoes on the stone of the way sounded overloud.

Whoever had laid out the way that highway traveled had paid no attention to the

contour of the land, had allowed no fact of nature to dispute where it would run. Hillocks had been cut through, leveled back to allow passage, surfaces smoothed. Its making was a feat of labor that I do not think the Dales, even if

ail their manpower was summoned to the task, could ever have equaled.

As the pavement provided the easiest of footing, we made far better time than we

had riding cross-country. Nor did we see any signs of life, except a bird or two—not flying in that threatening coil of the evil flock but high and alone.

The country apparently was very bare hearabouts, or else all that lived near kept then-distance from the road itself.

A little before sunset we came upon a place where the pavement curved out at one

side, forming an oval section that was still attached to the highway, as a piece

of fruit might lie next to a bough. Elys turned her mount in that direction and

for the first time in some hours spoke, raising her voice to reach me where I still trailed a little behind.

"This will afford a safe campsite."

Most of the surface of that oval was covered by one of the five pointed stars,

so that the space might lie under some protection, a kind we should welcome, I

guessed. There might not be any inns or other shelters along the highways, but

those who had built it had arranged such places as this for the safe rest of the

travelers.

Here the surrounding land was wide open, covered mainly with a tall-growing grass. We put our horses on picket ropes, allowing them to graze to their content. There was also (within a stride or two of the road) a basin in which water bubbled up from underground. The water was not only very clear and very cold, but it possessed a flavor all its own and… Can water be perfumed? I had never heard of such, yet when I rinsed my hands and then cupped them to make a

drinking cup, I was sure that I caught a faint scent—like unto that of a garden

of fresh herbs lying under the full-drawing rays of the sun.

Nor did we have to light a fire to brave the draw-in of the dark. For with the

coming of night that star in which our camp was set began to glow faintly.

There

was a warmth in the air. Whoever had fashioned this wonder we would never know,

but to me it was a fitting answer to all those who claim that only evil comes from the use of that which belongs to the Old Ones.

Elys sat crosslegged in the very heart of the star after we had eaten from our

trail supplies. Her eyes were fixed on the road. At first I believed that, in truth, her sight was turned inward, and that she was near in a state of trance,

which made me uneasy. With the coming of the dark a feeling of Power, which I had not sensed as we rode under the sun, gathered to hedge us in. One's skin prickled with uneasiness, one's hair seemed to stir with a force of deeply pent

energy.

I looked from Elys's closed face to the road. In me something came alert, waited—Would this highway also prove to be "haunted"? Would we see and hear tonight the passing of some who had long gone before? There came another thought

into my mind. Power such as I now felt could certainly be drawn upon. Suppose we

tried again to scry—might not the result be that I could see Joisan. learn enough to be guided directly to her?

"The cup…"I began, though I knew that breaking through her present deep absorption might alienate rather than lead Elys to agree to my plea.

She did not turn her head, she did not even break her forward stare by so much

as a blink. But her answer came readily enough.

"Not here. I have not the strength to hold what might answer. I am not so learned…" In her voice there was an unhappy, longing note. "No. I could not control the forces that await here. They have not been tapped for long and long—that does not mean they have grown the less, rather they have built in strength."

My disappointment was tinged with a fraction of anger. Still I knew that she was

right. One should not meddle to raise any Power that one did not know one had the ability to control. It was very certain that our present surroundings, benevolent as they seemed, might hold a violent response to any witchery, no matter how mild or well intended.

So I sat in silence, nor did I stare as she did down that road, which promised

so much and yet which we dared not trust. I did not care what ghosts might walk

here. They were no kin of mine—that I chose to be so. I was myself—alone—as in

reality I had always been. Yet, sometimes with Joisan…

To think of her brought pain that was not of the body, rather an inward ache, as

if I had hungered all my life and now understood that I must continue to hunger

until I died. There was Joisan…

I no longer saw that band of metal on my wrist, on which I had idly centered my

gaze. Rather, there arose before my eyes a girl's face, the skin sun-browned, thin… Perhaps no man who did not look the second time would call her beautiful.

No man—but I was not a true man, and, to me, she was as radiant as the fabled,

much-courted daughters of keeps such as the songsmiths sing of—those before whom

men paraded in their pride, fought monsters, and courted death-danger that they

might be noticed and admired.

She had such courage, that brown girl, so wide and deep a heart, that even an outcast who was also a "monster" had been invited into the warm core of it. I need only have said the right words and she would have come to me willingly.

But

I did not want willingness out of duty—I wanted…

I wanted something else, not pity, not duty, not that she came to me because we

had faced evil together and come unharmed out of that battle that we had fought.

I did not know just what I wanted—save it was something I had not found, nor really could put name to.

Then I heard, even through my cloud of self-pity, a soft sound from Elys, a deeper gasp that could only have come from Jervon. Startled I raised my head.

The road lay radiant in the night. Each and every mark along it was alive with

silver fire, even though the moon was not yet high.

Also—perhaps the cause was induced by some trick of that light, but it seemed to

me that part of the patterns moved. There was a glow that came and went along the patches that resembled the footprints of man, beast, and bird, almost as if

things now trod upon them, clouding them for a second here and there as an invisible foot pressed, was again lifted, while those symbols in the corners of

the stars glowed stronger, a light haze arising from them as if candles had been

set ablaze.

I put out my hand, without being conscious that I did, until Elys's fingers clasped mine. Also, I knew without looking, she must be linked with Jervon in the same manner. We were not alone! There were travelers on the road though we

might not see them, even as those other ghosts had passed into exile long ago.

They did not approach us. Perhaps they journeyed, not in another dimension of space, but in time itself. Great concerns we could not comprehend drew them on.

We dimly felt their concern— or at least I did.

Twice I stirred as a touch reached me. Slight as it was, that contact held the

sharp impact of a blow. For that single instant I had been on the brink of knowledge and understanding. Yes, I almost knew—then the meaning was lost and I

was left as empty as when I had put Joisan from me to ride alone out of Norsdale. Only this had nothing to do with Joisan, rather it came to me as a greeting, a meeting with those I understood, who knew and welcomed me—but to whose attention I could not hold because I was only a pan of what they were in

full.

I do not know how long we sat there so hand-linked, watching what no human eyes

could ever catch in full. There came at last a time when the prints no longer glowed, dimmed, glowed again, when our sensing of those hastening travelers faded. Elys's fingers slid out from mine. My hand fell limply, to lie on the stone.

We did not speak to each other—had we even seen or felt the same things? I never

knew. Rather we separated in silence, all at once full spent, worn from the watching, wrapped ourselves in our cloaks to sleep. Nor did I dream that night.

However, I awoke later in the morning than my companions. Jervon had already brought up the horses and had them saddled, the packs ready. Elys knelt, was busy dividing supplies into two pouches. As I sat up, she gestured to a portion

of journey cake set aside, giving the packet that held the remainder to Jervon.

He stayed where he was but Elys arose, to stand before me as I sat chewing the

dry cake, wishing that for once I had a bowl of porridge hot from the pot, such

as I had seldom tasted since I rode from Ulmsdale years ago.

"Kerovan," she said abruptly. "Here we must part company."

At first I did not even understand her. When I did, I stared at her open-mouthed. There were dark bruises left by exhaustion under her eyes, and her

face seemed gaunt, as if she were fresh out of some battle. Her hand went out in

a small gesture—not to summon power, rather one that expressed helplessness.

"We—we have been forbidden…"

I was on my feet, my food forgotten. What had happened as I slept away the rising of the sun? Who had forbidden?

She no longer looked at me but to the road, white and straight under the sun.

I

saw a longing, as deep as the heart-wrenching sorrow that I carried (perhaps with such ill grace) in her face. She might be regarding all the wonders the world can offer, piled in a heap before- her, and yet know that she could touch

them not.

"This way is not for us… not yet—not yet…"

The sadness in her eyes was near a sob in her voice.

"But you—you said…" I found myself floundering for weirds as might a child trying to learn from an elder the why of an inexplicable change in plan.

"When I told you that we would ride together—then I believed I spoke the truth.

Perhaps—perhaps we, Jervon—I—have been weighed and found wanting." Her disappointment was hurtful for any one to see. "Believe me, it is not for us to

go on. This is your road only, Kerovan. Perhaps we played our part merely in companying you to this place, even as we earlier companied your lady. There must

be some reason behind the pattern of our meeting with you both. Whatever that was, it is now fulfilled. But if we have in any way served—then remember us, Kerovan, in those days when you come into your heritage. It may be that we shall… No, you ride alone, for that is where you go—to accept your own fate, whether you believe it or not.

"If there comes a time later"—her expression did not change, still I read a thread of hope in her voice—"when we shall be made free of this way, arid none

shall say us no—men, when that time comes, look for us, Kerovan, be sure we come

with glad hearts. What we shall do from this day forward is wait— and struggle

and learn—until the road lies open."

I clasped her hand and her flesh was chill. She said no more but mounted. Then I

clasped hands with Jervon also. He had eyes mainly for Elys, as if whatever burden she bore, he would seize upon as his own if he could. I was left with no

words at all as I stood and watched them go leaving Joisan's mare and the pack

pony, on which they had loaded the bulk of their own supplies, a last gesture of

good will for me.

Back down the road they went, leaving in me a vast loneliness, a sharply growing

need. Still, such had been the force of Elys's words and manner I could not have

found any argument to stop them.

I did not at once start in the other direction along that road, which Elys had

said was to be mine alone. Rather I settled on my heels after I had seen them out of sight, they never turning once to lift hand to me again. Not until now had I been aware how much their company had meant during these past few days.

I

had ridden into this Waste telling myself that I was my own man (though I chose

to go on Imgry's errand), that in all High Hallack now there was not one I wished to comrade with, or who cared if I might come to trouble. Save only my lady—and her I had thought safe as anyone might be in this grim and war-torn land.

There was nothing, I had thought, which I any longer desired to have, to hold,

to know. As if he who had been Kerovan of Ulmsdale was dead—only a husk of him

walked, rode, spoke.

I had always known I was different. They had told me early that my mother could

not bear to look upon me and thus I had been sent to the very edge of my father's holdings to be fostered. There F had had but two friends—Riwal, for whom the Waste and its secrets were a lodestone, the attraction of which he never tried to deny, and Jago, a crippled man-at-arms who had taught me the ways

of war—and later died treacherously at the hands of his enemies who were also mine, those enemies I faced in time and fought.

No! Even at that battle with the Dark I had not been Kerovan of Ulmsdale; instead I had been filled by another personality, one who was out of another place (or else another time), filled with great force, one who used me as I myself would draw a sword. Save, when that presence withdrew, its will accomplished, it took with it that part of Kerovan that had warmth, a love of life, a belief in himself. Now I was empty, and only with the going of Elys and

Jervon (having witnessed the strong bond between them) did I realize how empty.

My fingers sought the wrist band of the Old Ones, as one of the Dames of Norsdale might tell her prayer hoops. Only I repeated no prayers, for though as

any rational person I acknowledged there were Powers beyond the comprehension of

my kind, still I called upon none such. The truth was I knew not which to call.

Or whether any such would still concern themselves with a husk of a man who was

lost inside his empty self as much as he would be lost in the world which was theirs.

To linger on here was no answer. Nor did I altogether believe Elys's assurance

that this was the road I must take to some unknown confrontation with the future. However, it had its safeguards, and was a means to reach the heights.

I

mounted the mare that had been Joisan's, fastened the lead rope of the pack pony

to my saddle horn, and at last rode on. The sun awoke silvery glints from the patterns laid in the stone. Those varied ever (though there were always the many

foot, paw, and hoof tracks cutting sometimes even across symbols). I noted that

all those prints pointed in the same direction— forward, none returned—as if all

traffic here lay in one direction only—toward the mountains. Just one more mystery to add to all the others.

I kept the mare to a walk. For about me, as I rode, there clung the feeling that

I was not alone (perhaps that had been allayed yesterday when I did have human

comrades), and neither did I believe that I passed unobserved. So I found myself

watching the prints far more than the way before me. In the sunlight they did not change as they had in the night, when it appeared that invisible feet fitted

and left their outlines.

This close watch on the pavement caused a feeling of detachment in my mind, induced a dreamy acceptance of all lying about me. When I suddenly realized that, I knew a pinch of fear. Was I being so ensorcelled by some long-laid spell?

Deliberately I turned the mare to the edge of the road, urged her to step off onto the turf. Unexpectedly she tossed her head, fought me, mouthing the bit angrily, planting her hooves and refusing to go. Was it the firmer footing of the pavement she wanted? Or was she under the guidance of another, even though I

held her reins? Perhaps the sorcery I suspected already had her enthralled.

Even for me it no longer seemed strange that I should close my eyes for an instant now and then, and feel (when I was not looking on the emptiness around

me) that I was riding in company, though none of those I sensed appeared aware

of me in turn. Or. if they were, my presence meant nothing to them as they had

urgent and pressing affairs elsewhere.

That feeling of urgency came to possess me also. The first slow pace I had set

the mare became a trot without my conscious urging. She held her head high, her

tail switched from side to side, as if she were a parade mount, proud among her

kind. The pack pony crowded up on my left until he paced abreast of us.

Though we certainly traveled more swiftly than before we had taken the road, those dark heights to the west were very slow in drawing closer. It was as if they in turn retreated before our advance.

Nor did I sight any more ruins such as the towers. This part of the Waste might

have always been forsaken wilderness had not the road traversed it. At intervals

there were those ovals such as we had used for a campsite. Each had its basin of

water, a good stand of grass inviting a traveler to rest. I drew into one at nooning, allowed the mare and the pony to graze, ate my journey cake washed down

with water. Then I simply sat, no longer thinking, just accepting that this is

what must be.

Lord Imgry, the Dales, the Wereriders, even Elys and Jervon, faded and diminished in my memory. I spun the band about my wrist. Holding that, I summoned up (first with an effort, and then with a fast burst of clear inner sight) my vision of Joisan. So vivid was that, I felt she actually stood somewhere ahead, waiting for me, a serious, questioning look on her face—the same expression I had seen there so many times during our last days together in

Norsdale.

"Joisan! Joisan!" I awoke to the fact that I was calling her name over and over

as my fingers slipped around that band.

Within me… No! I was not just a husk of a man after all! The dream that had held

me most of the morning shattered at that new force astir within. I saw again the

churned earth and Jervon digging in it; I watched a cup fill itself to the brim

and my lady's face show mistily, surrounded by the heavy dark but still with the

blazing gryphon in her hand. Hurriedly now I reclaimed the mare and the pony, swung into the saddle. There was a purpose in all this, as Elys had suspected.

I

might see only the beginning of it at the moment, but there would be more later

and…

What more that might be, or how I was so important a part of it, I did not yet

understand. Yet the urgency now fastened full upon me and my thoughts no longer

drifted. Rather did I make a speedy return to what once I had been—a scout of the Dales' force, marking not patterns upon the road, rather the country through

which it ran. For the first time I saw that indeed my morning's ride had brought

me well ahead. There lay foothills not too far beyond—forming the fringes of the

heights.

On those hills were odd outcroppings, which did not look to be natural in such

places. I had thought this part of the land held no ruins, but I saw them now—and so many that I might be approaching the remains of a town as large as one of our own port cities.

The sun, however, was well westward, when I came close enough to see those tumbled walls clearly. Above them, on a tongue of higher ground licking to the

east, stood towers, more walls—plainly a keep. It was of course a site such as

any builder would choose for a place of defense. So perhaps there had been those

also among the Old Ones who had not found life so safe that they could neglect

such positions of prudent safety.

As I drew rein to gaze upward, make sure that the keep was indeed a ruin (and not perhaps one hiding such a peril as that tower around whose territory we had

so carefully ridden), I caught a brilliant flash from the top of a broken wall a

little below the tower itself. I raised my hand as a shade for my eyes and felt

growing warmth about my wrist.

The band burned. For a moment or two I thought I had actually seen a small tongue of flame leap from its surface.

Now I dropped hand to sword hilt, even though I well knew that whatever might lie in wait there might be impervious to any steel, even that forged from Waste

metal itself.

At that moment there sounded an ear-punishing squall. Out of the brush that rimmed the flat land between the road and the rise on which stood the keep, a tawny, brown-yellow body flashed in great ground-covering bounds, heading for me. Behind it came a second.

Very faint and far away, nearly drowned by the animals' challenge, I thought I

also heard a shout. My sword was out. The creatures coming for me moved fast—like arrows of gold shooting through the tall grass. My pack pony snorted

and jerked back on the lead rope. However, the mare showed no fear, though she

sidled around to face head-on those who came.

Both halted short at the very edge of the highway, panting from the effort that

had brought them at such speed. I half expected now that one, or both, would launch into the air in a characteristic leap at prey. For I could now see they

were feline, not as large as the cunning and formidable snow cats to be sure, but still big enough to cause some trouble if they did attack.

I studied them as they made no further move, to my astonishment. These might be

kin-cousin to those cats living in the Dale keeps save they were much larger and

of a uniform yellow-brown I had not seen before. Both of their heads, between the large eyes and on the upper breasts, showed distinct V marks.

Since they had stopped and now were settling in a seated position, I felt slightly foolish to be holding bared steel and thrust my sword back into its sheath. Their behavior was certainly not that of ordinary animals. I reminded myself once again to expect anything in the Waste. Also they were certainly not

as formidable as—

"Do not be too sure of that!"

The cats had not made a sound since their initial squalls. Nor were those words

sounds. They had formed in my head, and came as a clear answer to a thought I had held! In spite of my belief that the Waste could hold any surprise, I found

it startling now to have my mind invaded by a coherent message—and it must have

originated from one of the animals, now regarding me round-eyed.

"What do you want of me?" I strove to form that as a mind-question and then discovered it was far easier to ask it aloud.

"Nothing." The reply was both clear and curt.

"Nothing? But you cried—you came…"

The smaller of the cats, a female, turned her head a fraction to look back over

her shoulder at the slope down which she and her mate had just descended.

"We want nothing. Wait—you shall learn who does."

Wait? For whom? That the cats might be allied with some other Waste dweller was

not out of reason. I glanced at my wrist band. The metal was still warm; however, the flame I thought I had seen in play was no longer there. I was sure

that I had not received a warning of evil to come, rather it had been another message—perhaps a recognition of another Power.

I slipped from the saddle and stretched. That saddle was not an easy perch for

my heavier body. Both the mare and the pony watched the cats, but I detected no

sign of fear such as my desert mounts had displayed at the coming of the Wererider.

"How long must I wait?" I asked after a moment.

Now the other cat also turned his head to look up-slope. I saw there a wavering

of brush, as if someone, or something, was fighting a path through tough growth.

A figure burst into the open, running and dodging among piles of stone that marked old ruins. Prom this distance it appeared human enough. Though that also

could mean nothing. It was well known that many of the Old Ones were human in appearance, enough so that they could couple successfully with Dale folk and produce offspring such as myself. Was it not true that my mother's clan had been

rumored to have had such ancestry, and it was not only her sorcery that had warped my body, but also her blood?

The runner sped from the last fringe of taller growth and sprinted now through

the grass that grew tall enough to brush those flashing legs knee high. Sun glinted on mail. But above that—a tangle of long hair was bunched into ragged braids Hopping across slender shoulders. A woman!

Elys? But how… ? That first explanation went in a flash. This hair was not the

black strands of the wise warrior-woman. It held the deep red-brown of autumn leaves in the high country. Only one had such hair—only—

I was running too, not aware of it until my boot snagged on a grass-hidden root

and I nearly sprawled full-length upon the ground. Then I heard my own voice cry, as loud as the screams of those black birds of ill-omen.

"Joisan!"

Joisan

I SQUEEZED CLOSER TO THE OPENING IN THE WINDOW. LEANED AS FAR forward as I could

to view the ribbon of white road that ran along the lowlands. From my vantage point, which was, of course, well removed, that highway appeared untouched by time. I expected to see riders—travelers along it. Save that, for the stretch I

was able to view, it was bare of any traffic at all. Still the road itself was,

in a manner, reassuring. If—or when—surely, it was when—I decided to leave this

refuge and take up my journey again (though I had no idea in which direction I

would go) that would be a guide.

Now I strove to study the slope descending to the plain across which that road

so boldly ran. There were a number of upstanding outcrops of stone, which I believed marked other ruins, even more decayed by the action of time than that

in which I stood. I wondered if this had been a fortress of greater extent than

it first appeared. The narrow windows on this outer wall suggested that those who had built it might have had reason to fear some attack from the north.

However, for me now, the road was more important than piles of old stone blocks.

I made the rounds of the three other sides of the tower, attempting to view more

of the keep itself and its surroundings here on the upper ridge. On the courtyard side the vines had grown too thickly for me to break any peephole through. My attempts to do so brought shrill cries from the birds, a wild thrashing in the vines, so I left off such assault. To the east there was merely

another drop—though this lay farther away. What lay below there showed a yellow

patch, reminding me of the desert through which we had made our way into the Waste. To the west lay the long ridge, widening well out from the point on which

the keep had been built. There were the remains of walled fields, more shells of

buildings, a portion of the orchard.

Sight of that brought back both hunger and thirst. I abandoned my exploration to

seek out food and water. This morning, tracing the water from the spring for a

short distance I came upon a stone walled pool. There I dared to slide out of mail and clothing, dipped myself, rubbing my body down with handfuls of grass to

scrub me clean, then undertook to wash my hair which was still soil-clotted.

Leaving it to hang free across my shoulders and wind-dry, I did such brushing and cleansing of my clothing as I could. The sun was caressingly warm on my bare

body and I found myself humming, even as our keep maids had sung when they washed the linens along the water troughs.

I had drunk deeply. Now, pulling on, though I disliked their rustiness against

my clean body, my breeches and jerkin, I tried to rebraid my hair, making sorry

business of taming the still-damp strands. Even the bronze clip, which held the

coils in place under my helm, was gone, and I tied it up as best I could with twisted bits of long, tough grass.

Then, my mail shin slung in folds across my shoulder, I went hunting once more

for the berry bushes. Only this time I had another find to chew on. There was a

kind of water plant, the roots of which were crisp and sweet when washed clean.

As I crunched away at those, I remembered—though it was dim—a part of a far different life, when such had been served in the summer at our high table in Ithdale. My aunt had also had a skillful hand in the making of sweets, and she

had devised on her own a recipe for preserving these thin stalks, cut small, in

a honey mixture for winter eating.

I looked down now at my berry-stained hands, at the mail, which lay in a coil of

brilliant folds under the sun. Ithdale was so long ago, so far away, that my life there was more like the tale of a songsmith, nothing that had really happened to the Joisan who was here and now. Shrugging on the weight of mail, I

went exploring farther into the orchard-garden. But I found no ripe tree fruit.

There was a tangle of melon vines into which I dived eagerly and came up with two which were golden ready, small for lack of skillful cultivation—yet still to

be prized. With those in hand I started back to the courtyard, which I now looked upon as my campsite.

There were furred things in the grass, which leaped or ran ahead of my passing,

but I had no knife nor dart gun with which to hunt. In an odd way I could not bring myself to think of killing here—even for food. This must be a rich hunting

ground for the cats—perhaps also for the bear—some of his kin were noted as relishing flesh as well as berries and such.

Juggling the melons I climbed over fallen stones and so entered the courtyard once more, planning to use the sharp edge of my belt buckle as a tool to slit the fruit. They might furnish both food and drink. The sun now beat so hot that

my mail was a steadily irksome burden.

I had become so used to the loneliness of the keep since my awakening that I gave a start when I saw that both cats had returned, were lying lazily at their

ease in the beam of a sun ray. The female licked at her paws, her eyes slitted

against the light. Even as I came closer her mate rolled over, his paws in the

air, wriggling his body back and forth against the warm stone as if he were relieving just such an itching as my own leather jerkin brought in a portion of

my back that I could not reach.

Seeing them thus taking their ease I paused, feeling very much the intruder—an

uninvited guest. The female blinked at me, took no other notice, but continued

to curl her tongue about a paw. However, the male sat up and shook himself vigorously.

I stood there, melons in my hand, facing them both uncertainly. Surely this was

the strangest confrontation that could occur even in this land. Then I rallied

and found myself voicing the guest greeting of my own people. These were not animals—but much more…

"For the welcome of the gate"—I found myself speaking aloud, and my gratitude did actually stir—"my thanks. For the feasting on the board"—(though that was my

own gleaning and whether the cats could be thought to have ownership over the garden was a point to be questioned, though I certainly would not do so)—"my pleasure and my good wishes. To the Lord of this roof, fair fortune."

"Lord of this roof?" The repetition of my own words sprang into answer within my

head. If such a manner of communication could express amusement that was what was plain to me now. "A pretty speech, woman of the Dales. So that is how you speak among your kind. Now let me but think a little… ah, yes. 'To the Farer on

far roads the welcome of this roof, and may fortune favor your wandering."

That was one version of the Dale welcome for a guest unknown personally to any

lord. That this cat would quote the exact formal words was again startling.

How

did an inhabitant of the Waste learn our polite courtesy? However, the cat was

continuing.

"You did well to listen to us—and remain here." Now the light note had vanished

from the mind-speech. Nor was I entirely surprised at the rest of what he said

now.

"There has been a new stirring—"

When he added nothing to that, I moved forward to settle crosslegged on the heap

of wilting grass that had been my bed (after all, he had given the guest greeting). Placing the melons on the stone before me (food was not my main interest now), I had a question ready.

" What manner of stirring? The Thas?" Since that or those had been the one menace I had met so far, my mind turned immediately in that direction. For a moment the fear that had been part of the dark and the stench awoke in me. My imagination painted a picture of tumbling walls (even such as these which had so

long withstood the hammering of time), the ancient keep caught in a churning of

the earth, all of it and us, too, sucked under.

"Perhaps Thas, among others." The cat did not shrug as might a man, but some inflection of his reply signaled such a gesture. "No, not as you think now—here.

Old as are the protection spells laid on Carfallin, they still hold, and shall

for perhaps many seasons yet. However, last night had its riders, its searchers,

its seekers. Things are awake, watching, to prowl and sniff and hunt. Though as

yet they are not sure of what they seek or how the hunt will begin."

"You believe that my coming has done this? But if the Thas had already burrowed

their underground ways into the land—that was surely done well before my arrival," I protested. I deemed it certainly unfair to lay upon me the rousing

up of Dark Forces, when I had not called on any Power except to save my own life. Nor had I used it, save only in the battle in the darkness, against any inhabitant of the Waste.

The Thas had fled the light, yes but I did not think that they had suffered any

real hurt from its beams. No—-I refused to have such burden as this laid upon me.

However, even as a man might do, this time the cat shook his sleek head from side to side.

"Even with that"—a lift of his muzzle indicated the gryphon lying on my breast—"some stir now which could not be called into action by such a talisman

alone. Forces are on the move, we do not know why—as yet. It is only that all that move are of the Dark. Long ago boundaries were set, locks were made, spells

were cast. Within stated ways Light and Dark could come and go, always apart.

Now there is a straining of those containing spells, a touch here, a thrust there—a testing to see if they still hold. The reason for this… who can tell?"

"The Dales have been invaded." I seized upon that one fact—though why the inhabitants of the Waste should take that into account I did not understand.

There was no doubt that they had defenses that no such invaders could pierce.

They need only call upon perhaps the least of these, then return safely thereafter to their old ways of life. "I know nothing of how the war there goes

now, save that the fighting so far has not favored my people. The Hounds of Alizon range far, they have more men, better weapons. Could this war now have lapped into your country?"

The female curled a scornful lip. "Men only—they hold or call no Power. Our land

would not stir awake for the likes of them! The least of us could send them fleeing at will, or kill without much effort. No, what stirs is rooted in the past, has been long asleep, now it awakens. Those who rouse are not yet fully awake, or you and every living thing, between the Mountains of Arvon and the sea

would know it. However, they turn and move in their sleep, and their enfolding

dreams have come to an end. It may well be that the cycle of slumber has finished. We—those of our kind—never knew the appointed time of awakening.

Such

will cause a mighty change…"

She gave a last lick to her paw before folding it under her.

"It will not be well to be one such as you if and when the day of true awakening

comes," she commented (with something of relish, I thought resentfully).

"Unless, of course, you can learn a bit—and have not only courage, but also the

will to survive."

I refused to give any ground to her. Though I had no intention of claiming any

talent I did not possess, still I looked at her straightly as I answered.

"We all must learn many things during our lifetimes. If there is that which I must do—then I am ready to do it." (I thought of my plea to Elys and of how that

had come to nothing in truth because the Thas trap had put an end to it. On the

other hand I had learned through that. I remembered only too easily the burden

of concentrating my will on the gryphon.) "As for courage and will—we cannot measure how much of each lies within us, we can only trust that there will be sufficient to carry through trials which may lie ahead."

I had suddenly a flash memory of my aunt—had that phrase sounded as if said in

her very voice? A little so, I thought. Once the pronouncements of Dame Math had

been the laws of the world to me. I brushed back the hair that I could only secure in such an untidy fashion and perhaps I sighed.

"There is another of your blood coming." The male broke through the silence that

had fallen upon us. "He may even be the one you have sought. This one, at least,

dares to ride the white road. No rune or spell set there has turned him back, though these forbade the way to others in his company. He comes now with one purpose in his mind—or so he believes. I think that he is to be fitted to another."

The melons rolled away as I got to my feet in an instant.

"Kerovan! But how do you know?" Then I had second thoughts. There could well be

others of human kind in this land—scavengers, outlaws and the like. I could not

count that this was indeed Kerovan.

My demand was met by a second silence. I waited for a painful moment or two, then was forced to accept the fact that these two furred ones would keep their

own council. To strive to force any more information out of them, when they did

not choose to give it, would lessen me in there opinion. It is very odd to feel

that one is an impulsive child in the sight of such as these. My first reaction

was anger. Still, I suspected that anger itself, within the bonds of the Waste,

might be a most dangerous emotion unless controlled and used only at one's desire, as a weapon—a feat I was certain I could not accomplish. Though the control part—that I must learn.

If this promised traveler was Kerovan on his way here, what mattered most was that I be prepared to meet him—to withstand his anger. If, indeed, he felt enough within that shell he had built about him to know hot human anger any longer. I must think carefully, plan alternate moves, each depending upon his attitude when we met. That we must resolve our difficulties—that was far more important to me now than any waking sleepers or stirring of long-dormant forces

in the Waste.

I sat down on my heap of grass and worked to enwrap my eagerness, control a heart that had begun to beat faster, to appear as outwardly serene as the cats.

Reaching for the nearest melon, I began the awkward business of sawing away at

its rind with the sharpest edge of the belt buckle, thinking while I worked that

it would be well when I had eaten this piece of fruit (not because I now really

wanted or needed it, but because the very act of leisurely feasting would be the

beginning of my prized control) that I search the rest of the ruins where I had

not ventured earlier. There might just be in that supposedly barren interior something I could use as a weapon.

The melon was just at the proper stage of ripeness and I did feast on its rosy,

juicy interior, inelegantly, having to spit out seeds into my hand and make a small heap of them to one side. Shining black they were. When I had been very small I had been given a coarse needle and a length of stout linen thread and had spent the whole of an absorbed morning making myself a brave necklace of just such seeds, which Harta the cook had saved for me.

Harta—she had not been one of those who had come together with us in the hills

after the escape from Ithdale. So many had been lost! I wondered if some intelligence somewhere decided who would win through, who would never be seen again—or were their lives a blind gamble of fate?

I went to wash my face and hands at the spring, wipe them on sunwarmed grass, paying no attention—outwardly—to the cats who had apparently both gone to sleep

in the sun. With a little more confidence than I had had to stiffen me during my

first visit to the keep, I once more entered the great hall with those strange

cat-shaped benches. This time I did not head for the corner tower—rather I took

the other direction.

There, in the deepest gloom of this chamber, I found a huge fireplace, darkened

on hearth and up the cavern of an interior with the signs of smoke and soot.

Its

presence suggested that the builders here had been at least human enough to need

heat in the chill of winter and that the Waste was no more hospitable at that season than the seaward-reaching Dales.

On the wide and heavy overmantel, where a lord of the Dales would have had carven the badge of his house, there was a symbol deep wrought—one I had seen before. It was of the circular body with widespread wings. Save that here it was

dull and time-stained, hardly to be distinguished in the poor light. On either

side of it was set, on guard, the figure of a cat.

There were drifts of dried leaves, powdering into dust, on the hearth, but any

remains of a welcoming fire long gone. I remained there for a moment, then let

my eyes range about the room, trying to imagine how it had once been—who had held high feast days here, if such were known to these people who had drawn their stools and chairs closer to the flames in winter. What stories had their

songsmiths wrought to keep their minds encased in wonder? Had they had songsmiths to take their heroes' acts and make them live in song and tale?

I raised my hand high, striving to touch the symbol, and discovered that even when I stood on tiptoe it was still above my reach. At first I had thought it near invisible against the dull stone in which it was carved. Now… I blinked, rubbed the back of my hand across my eyes. The cats… they were far more easy to

study—there was a glint of fire in their wide-open, staring eyes.

W as it some illusion of the dusk caught within this room, or could it be that

one of those heads was slightly larger, heavier of jowl, than the other? I looked from left to right and back again, began to believe that my guess was correct. The cat heads were not in duplicate, but individual. Also I believed I

had seen them before, mounted on living, breathing bodies, lying at sleepy ease

out in the courtyard. Some worker in stone long ago had caught both male and female; the same animals? Even with all the tricks and talents of the Waste I could hardly accept that the two I saw outside had been those whose portraits were sculptured here. Time might stretch long for the Old Ones (and were any Old

Ones animals?), but surely not to that extent. If these were not the portraits

of the same cats, they must be distant forefather and foremother and the strain

had held true.

I stepped into the cavernous mouth of the fireplace, kicking at the leaves, hoping against hope to turn up some piece of the metal, the fire dogs that had

once supported the burning wood, some other fragment that would be promising.

There was nothing left.

To my right a doorway in the inner wall led to whatever survived at the other end of the building. Deserting the fireplace with its knowing guard cats, I passed through that. The hall beyond was wide enough to be a gallery and here lay the first signs of furnishing I had seen, other than the stone cat benches.

All I wanted!

With a cry, I sped forward, to snatch at the black-tarnished hilt of a sword.

Only to find that what I held when I pulled it from out the litter on the floor

was a jagged stub. I tried it against one finger, the metal flaked away thinly.

There were other weapons lying along the wall as if they had fallen from stone

pegs, which were still set there. Nothing had survived that could be used. At last in my disappointment I sent the stuff flying, with a kick that shattered it

even more into a dust of rust.

There was another square room beyond, a second stair like unto the one I had found in the outlook tower. I judged that this must serve the second tower I had

noted earlier—the one that supported a living tree in place of the lord's banner. The steps appeared secure enough, as long as one crowded against the wall on the left, so I climbed.

On the second floor there was another doorway, as well as the continuation of the steps leading upward, and I judged that the doorless opening gave upon rooms

that must have been built above the arms gallery. I took that way now in turn.

Another hall here but a very much narrower one, hardly more than a passage where

perhaps two of my own girth could walk abreast, and, to my left, three doorways.

There had been doors here also—two of them, like the one in the courtyard, showed rotted bits of wood, the fallen debris, that had once formed barriers.

But the one in the middle…

The wood of that looked Firm and whole. I could detect no crack brought about by

time, no skim of rust upon the metal fittings. There was a locking bar across it—from the outside! Had I come across such precaution on the lower floor, or in

whatever cellars might be found in this place (I had no desire to go prying into

such as those), I would have said this was a prison. It was perhaps a "safe"

chamber such as some lords had for the protection of their more valuable belongings when they were from home, save that the bar lacked any of the ponderous locking devices usually in use on such.

I went forward very slowly to touch the wood above that bar, half expecting to

have it crumble. Against the pressure of my hand as I applied more strength, it

had a very solid feeling. There was no one to forbid me to draw that bar, and the shaft itself looked as if it lay lightly in the two loops through which it

rested. At last, after some hesitation (I must not surrender to any fear), I knew I had to learn why one door in all the deep remained in the same condition

it must have been when the building was at its most complete, the bar still sturdy, while elsewhere armor and weapons flaked away to the touch. There are many legends of how curiosity brought into peril those of the Dales who were unable to resist mysteries left by the Old Ones. At that moment I could understand the need that had driven those unfortunates, for I was under just such a compulsion to draw the bar that I could no longer fight it. Draw I did.

Perhaps it was the bar alone that, by some trick of its makers, had kept the door intact. For, as I pulled it to one side, and the door itself began to swing

slowly toward me, cracks appeared in its surface, ran with a speed I could follow by my eyes, over the wood. There was a grating, a puff of stale air blown

outward. The door slipped drunkenly on one hinge as the other snapped with sound

sharp enough to make me start.

Half open, the door was fast falling into the same sorry condition as its two neighbors to the right and left. Pieces of the wood broke, crumbled in dusty puffs as they hit the stone pavement.

I shrank as that disintegration began, but now that it appeared to cease, with a

last clatter, as the bar finally fell and snapped in two, I made myself edge forward to look into the room beyond.

I had only a moment or so to see—to look upon what had been sealed from time until I rashly had let in the years, and age itself wrecked, with fury, whatever

the spell (I was sure I had broken a spell) had protected.

This room had not been bare. There were tapestries on the wall, and, though I saw their splendor only for two or three of the breaths I had drawn in wonder,

they were so rich I could not believe that any human hand or hands had been able

to stitch such. There was a bed, with a tall canopy, the posts of which were seated cats, each taller than myself. On the bed lay rich coverings of a tawny

yellow like the fur of the cats, which grayed into ash brown, then were gone, as

were the coverings on the floor. A table had stood against one wall and on it a

mirror, its carved frame topped by a cat's head. On that table were boxes—whose

richness I had very little time to see, other things gone fast to dust before I

could identify them.

Were there chairs, stools, a tall, upright wardrobe chest such as might hold gowns any keep lady would find herself hot with desire even to hold? I am sure

there were. I am certain I can remember having a hasty glimpse of such. I had not stepped across the threshold; I only stood and watched a glory that made me

ache for its beauty become suddenly nothing. Windows were revealed now as the curtains that had been drawn across them withered away far faster even than a delicate flower can wither if it is left in the full light of the sun, having been idly plucked for no real purpose.

The light from those windows streamed in (there appeared to be no curtaining vine outside here). In its beans, the dust motes dance a thousand fold. Then…

there was nothing—just nothing at all…

No, that was not true.

In the midst of one of those shining panels of sunlight there was a gleam, something that appeared to catch the sun and then reflect it forth again, not in

a hard glitter but in a soft glow. I hesitated to cross that chamber. Only, just

as I had been unable to resist opening the spell-locked door, so I could not now

stop myself.

The dust was very thick. I coughed, waved my hands before my face, strove to clear the air that I might breathe long enough to reach what lay in the mote-clogged sunbeam. When my boot toe near-nudged it, I stooped to pick up a ring.

Unlike the rest of the metal in the room it had not flaked into nothingness.

The

band felt as firm as if it had been fashioned only yesterday. But the setting was unlike any stone I had ever seen in my life. We of the Dales are poor in precious things. We have a little gold, washed out of streams, we have amber, which is greatly prized. A few of the very wealthy lords may have for their wearing at high feast days some colored gems from overseas. But those are mainly

small, polished but uncut. I held now something far different from those.

The stone (if stone it was) was near the size of my thumb, though the hoop which

held it was small, clearly meant for a woman's wearing. This gem or stone had not been cut, nor did it need to be polished. For it had been fashioned by some

freakish twist of nature herself into the semblance of a cat's head and the surface was neither pink, nor yellow, but a fusing of the two with an iridescent

cast to the surface, over which rainbow lights slipped as I turned it this way

and that. I slipped the band over my Finger. It was as if it clung there, made

for no other's wearing—also it felt as if it were in its rightful place at long

last.

Moving closer to the window I turned my hand this way and that, marveling at such a thing showing against the brownness of my skin where the scratches of berry briars drew many rough lines. I did not know what it was but—it was mine!

I was sure of that as if the ring had been slipped solemnly on that finger in some formal gifting. Once more I turned it again for the sun to catch it fair,

then I heard…

A yowling arose, so sharp and clear it could have come from immediately below my

window. I was looking out, down the slope toward the road. Both the cats were leaping from stone to stone, winding about bushes, disappearing, as they made their way through the jumble of ruins and stone that lay there below.

Beyond… there was a rider on the road! A rider! I saw sun flare in bluish gleam,

small and far away—a mailed rider. He whom the cats had said would come?

Kerovan?

Forgetting everything but what had drawn me for so many days, I turned and ran,

dust rising up above me in a cloud that set me choking and gasping, but still I

ran. I must know who rode the white highway. I could guess, I could hope—but I

must know!

Kerovan

THAT JOISAN WAS HERE BESIDE THE WHITE HIGHWAY OF THE OLD ones—not trapped in dark and danger—was the only thought that filled my mind. Then she was in my arms, and I held her with such a grip as would keep her safe against the worst

the Dark might send against us—so would I keep her as long as my strength lasted.

She was crying, her face wet with tears, as her hands closed on my shoulders in

a grasp I could feel even through my mail. I forgot all the thoughts that had ridden me through long hard days, as I bent my head to find' her lips, tasting

the salt of her tears. A fire arose and raged through me as we so clung, forgetting all else but each other.

Only such moments cannot last. I loosed her a little, remembering who I was and

why this great joy might not continue for me. This was a time when once more I

must don inner armor, not for my protection, but hers.

If my hold loosened, hers did not. She only pushed back a fraction so that she

might look directly into my face as her sobs came as ragged and uneven breaths.

"Kerovan—truly Kerovan…" Her voice was hardly more than a whisper.

Kerovan—my name completed the breaking of the spell. I moved to put her away from me but she would not let me. Rather she shook her head from side to side as

might a child who refuses to give up something upon which she has set her heart's desire.

"No, you shall not leave me again! You were here—now you try to go—but you shall

not!"

I was here? What did she mean? Then the warmth still consuming me made that plain. The husk that had been Kerovan now held life. All my good intentions, my

knowing this was wrong, that I was tainted—they were threatened by that warmth,

by her words…

Setting my teeth I raised my hands to her wrists. By main strength I must break

her hold, push her away from me. Still she shook her head. Now she also writhed

in my hold, fought me as if she had been one of the tawny cats.

"No!" Her denial arose louder. "Do you not understand? You shall never be free

of me—you cannot. We—we must be—"

Her voice faltered. I do not know what expression my face wore, but hers became

one of growing despair. Then her shoulders slumped, her hands went limp in my grasp. It was she who edged away.

"Let me go," she said in a low voice. "I shall not trouble you so again. I thought that…" Her voice trailed off; she raised one hand to smear it across her

cheeks. Then she flung back her head, tossing her disordered hair out of her eyes, away from her face.

I could not answer, it took all my resolution to curb the rebellious desire within me. I could only stand—alone. Her chin lifted, strength of purpose shone

from her eyes. There was that in her carriage, her voice—such will and self-confidence—which would provide a safeguard as strong as the armor and leather she wore.

"I have no pride," she said, even when every inch of her taut, straight body, proclaimed her right to that. "I listen to your voice saying, 'You are not my lady, I have no wish to be your lord'—but I cannot accept those words as a woman

should. So I come after you because—only with you, Kerovan, am I a person in whom I can believe. Therefore, if you deny me again, and ride on for whatever mission Imgry has set you—and how is it that such as he dares say 'do this and

do that' to you—I shall follow. Even if you are sworn to his service."

As she studied me through slightly narrowed eyes, I could not even yet find the

(rawer of tongue to answer her. If I could not command my inner self, how then

could I man my defenses against her? Not with this wild mutiny growing within me.

I shook my head, glad in a small way to be able to answer a lesser question.

"I swore no oath." I found those words easily enough. "I came at my own will.

Had it not been my choice I would not have ridden forth."

Perhaps then, because I was so glad to find an excuse not to meet her personal

challenge, I spoke of my mission—of what Imgry had learned about Alizon's search

for a "power."

To my relief she listened with growing interest.

"And what success have you had in marshalling any of the Waste?"

I told her of the Wereriders.

"So—and now whom do you seek?" she asked.

I drew a ragged breath and shook my head. Instead I told her of my return to my

camp, of the devastation I found there. At my mention of Elys and Jervon, she put out her hands, catching at my arm.

"Then they live—were left above ground! I thought—I hoped— that might be so."

I had a question of my own. "Where were you?"

She moved back a little, her hands busy now with her hair. For the first time I

became aware of a rising wind, the fact that the sun had gone behind clouds.

She

frowned at the sky.

"There is a storm coming. You can feel it in the air. Up there"—she pointed to

the rough, steep slope—"there is shelter— come!"

I could find no reason to refuse. Leading the mare and the pony, I followed her.

For the first time I remembered the cats. There was no sign of them now.

The ascent was not an easy one, and above the clouds grew ever thicker and darker. As we rounded the side of a wall and entered into a courtyard the first

drops of rain began to fall. Lashes of lightning cracked across the sky to the

west. The roll of thunder was heavier than the rumble of Alizon war machines crowding through the throat of some narrow dale.

I loosed the pack pony and the mare from their burdens, Joisan stooped to catch

up a share of the bags and packs, helping to draw these into a dark chilly hall.

She caught at a smaller pack from the pony.

"Elys's thought-—I am glad of this. But where is she? And Jervon? Did you send

them away—or did they deem me dead and…"

"It was when we came to that road. Only this morning she said that they would travel no farther—for some reason that was forbidden. A Wise woman who carries a

sword is a thing I had never heard of. She cannot be of the Dales—"

"If it were meant that they should not come, she would know, of course. No, she

is not of the Dales—nor the Waste either— her parents came from a wreck on the

coast. And, though she was born here, her blood is strange."

Gloom of near-night darkness came quickly with the rush of rain outside. Her face was only a blur to me.

"She has power," Joisan was continuing. "And Jervon"—for a moment she paused, then continued in an even tone—"he accepts her for what she is. He is not the less in her eyes, nor she the greater in his. They are two halves well-fitted together to form something stronger than either. This may not happen easy or often, but when it does… Ah, then it is as if both have found a treasure—a treasure beyond dreams of other men!"

There was a ring of something close to defiance in her tone. I knew I must not

confront her again on this subject, which lay heavy in both our minds. Instead I

asked once more what had happened after the earth swallowed her.

So I heard the strange tale of her being caught in thick dark and hunted through

that dark by the Thas. Also of how the gryphon had been her salvation.

"I do not know just how it was awakened to my aid. Somehow the strength of my will, my need, brought it to life. It was the light that showed me the door into

a place—a very strange place."

She spoke then of a chamber wherein lay a maze of low walls, of how she had won

to the center of that having perceived a pattern. In the middle she had taken refuge and fallen asleep—or into the web of another sorcery—and had awakened outside this keep.

"There was fruit and water here…" Before I could move she dashed out again into

the courtyard, returned near as swiftly, laughing and shaking raindrops from her

hair, bringing with her a melon, which she dumped on the floor between us.

"Give me your knife. Mine—all my weapons—were taken from me in the dark."

Joisan

plucked my knife from the belt sheath to slash open the melon. She pressed half

of it into my hands.

The fruit was sweet, filled with juice—better than I could ever remember eating—bringing comfort to my mouth and throat. I produced in turn a cake of journey bread which we also shared— Joisan having gone to wash her hands in the

fall of water beyond the door, shaking them as dry as she could.

"There are more of these—and berries, water plants—I did not go hungry once I reached here."

"And the cats?"

Joisan had settled herself cross-legged beside me, well within touching distance, only her hands lay loosely together on one knee. She made no move to

reach out to me.

"Yes, the cats. You may not believe this, Kerovan, but those two are not animals

as we know them. They understand one's thoughts and speech and mind-speak in return. There is—was, for I have not seen him since my first coming—also a small

bear who can do likewise. The cats told me to wait, that one was coming. I climbed the tower and saw the road. But I wonder…" I saw her lift one hand now

and regard it closely. Then she held out that hand to me and asked a question.

"Kerovan, you have been much more up and down the Dales than I. Have you seen the like of this before?"

I could see, even through the storm gloom, that there was a ring on one finger

of the hand she had raised. Though I did not want—feared now—any touch contact

with her, I did take that hand in mine and brought it closer that I might see the ring.

The stone was an irregularly shaped gem of some kind. And, oddly enough, once I

had taken her hand in mine it became more visible, so that I could see the hue

of the stone (if stone it truly was). It was unlike any color I had seen—both rose and yellow— the colors melting into one another.

"Kerovan!"

I did not need that alerting cry of my name. I had taken her hand in my right one. On my wrist, the band half-hidden by the drooping of the mail shirt was bright and clear, shining so that its light reached the strange ring and seemed

to feed the gem. Thus its own glow grew the greater.

Joisan freed herself from the hold I had unintentionally tightened, brought her

hand and the ring up breast high so that the gem near-touched the crystal gryphon. But there was no reaction from that talisman and Power-holder.

She put up the fingers of her other hand as if she would catch at the gem-set hoop, tear it off, and then she stopped.

"It contains no harm, I think…" she said slowly. "Perhaps you cannot see it clearly. But the stone itself is shaped in the form of a cat's head, though it

was not cut so by men. The cats—"

"You are sure they are real?"

"Not hallucinations? You saw them for yourself—they are as real as this!" She held out her hand once again. "Did you believe them illusions when they stopped

you on the road?"

"No." I was sure—whatever those two beasts might be, whomever they might serve

(if servants they were)—I was certain they were real. I had been led to this place for a purpose even as Elys had suggested. I wanted to banish that conclusion, but I could not.

"Where did you get that?"

She told me of her explorations of the ruined keep in which we now sheltered, of

a barred door—barred on the outside— where within until she had, as she said,

"let the years in," there had existed a reminder of the past in furnishings.

And

of how all had vanished into dust before her eyes, leaving only the ring in a pool of sunlight.

It was such a tale as a songsmith might devise, but I believed every word of it.

"I have never seen its like…"I began slowly. "This"—I fingered the wrist band—"suggests it has some tie with Power."

"There are many things in the Waste—is that not what our legends always say?

Somehow I think that this was meant—" She glanced at me—or at least she turned

her head a fraction in my direction though it was too dark to see her expression. "Was meant," she repeated, "to be found when the door was opened.

But why such a spell was ever laid and its meaning…"

"It is not of the Dark."

"I know," she agreed simply, her hand once more caressing the gryphon at her breast. "This would have warned me. It is very beautiful—and strange—and the way

that it came… I feel it is a gift."

There was a hint of defiance in her tone as if she believed that I would urge her to throw the ring from her. But that was not in my thoughts. There had been

so little of beauty for Joisan since she and her people had fled Ithdale—and perhaps even during the years before. I had been able to give her no bride gift

except the gryphon—and that too had come by chance out of the Waste. I wished for a moment of sorrow that the ring had been my gift, also—a thing for her to

cherish.

I had searched blindly for Joisan and I had found her—no thanks to any real effort of my own. Such fortune was only barely possible. That I had been helped,

or guided, in the right direction by some other intelligence—that explanation seemed to me a little more credible. That was a bitter conclusion and one I did

not want to accept. I… perhaps we… were caught up in—in whose web… and why?

That we must remain together from now on I must also probably accept, for I was

now without any guide to take us out of the Waste and I could not let her go alone—in fact I knew she would not.

Which meant I must speedily regain my inner armor, make myself believe that any

close feeling between us was wrong, that if I yielded now—the easy choice—it would be worse for her.

I remained wary of even the smallest hint of surrender to that other self. I had

fought so hard to contain my desires, my longings. Even now that struggle rose

anew in me and I ached throughout my body for Joisan to come into my arms once

more. By her own efforts, and with no help from me, she had escaped worse danger

than I had faced for a long time. I did not want to think ahead—that we two might be led into new perils. As my thoughts so twisted and curled, and I forced

them into hard conclusions, she spoke again.

"This is not a place of peace, such as one finds even in the Dales. I was in one

of those once, Kerovan—the night Toross brought me out of the invaders' hands at

the taking of Ithdale. That was a place of wonder… and he died there. So I have

always known in my heart that he rests easy. This does not hold anything except

many years of time's dust. Still we are safe here—as the cats promised. Do you

not also feel that is so?"

Now her ringed hand reached, found mine. I could not help myself, but locked fingers with hers. This was Joisan, she was here with me—safe—while outside the

storm rolled on and did not reach us. I felt nothing of old Power stirring here.

In spite of her story of the long ensorcelled room, there was only a warmth that

came from the two of us and was not born of any spell.

During that night, as Joisan and I shared shelter in the ruined keep, I dreamed

again—as strong a dream as the one that had shown me the sleeper days earlier.

But this was not a dream filled with any light for me to see by—rather total dark (or else I was blind)—for I could perceive nothing. I only felt—or heard.

"You labor to no purpose." A voice cut through that dark, the arrogance in it as

sharp as any blow. "Our difference was settled long ago."

"Difference?" The wry amusement which colored that answer was plain. Though the

first voice had been heavy with Power, this second speaker was not impressed.

"That is an odd way to-describe what passed between us then, Galkur."

I felt now a welling of anger warming fast to red rage, lapping about me in that

sightless place as if to crisp me into ashes. The emotion swelled high—then vanished. I sensed that the being exuding that raw anger had it under control now, behind a wall that could not yield to any surprise assault.

"You play with words." This time he—or it—sounded possessed by icy contempt—or

was that would-be contempt?

I discovered then that, in some way strange to me, I was not listening entirely

to words, rather striving to weigh emotions— for those were of the greater importance here.

"I play with nothing," came again that lighter, amused voice, unruffled, betraying no more than surface interest in their exchange. "Most of all—not with

men. They are very imperfect tools at the best. Have you not yet learned that,

Galkur?"

"You name names!" The first voice snarled—like the snow cat I had seen Herrel become. Still I knew that these were not Weres, nor were they men.

'Why not? Do you now stoop to that small belief of men, that a name gives one Power over another? Ha, Galkur, I would not have believed you so diminished, even though the years have spun you far from what you were."

"Time has spun me nowhere!" Once more the heat of fury blazed, died, as the speaker rapidly checked it. "I am still what I have always been—and shall continue to be!"

"Now that interests me, Galkur." The second voice appeared to enjoy repeating the name. "What you are, and what you will continue to be, a statement you appear to take pride in making. What were you on the night when a certain female

of the Dales used her puny talent to summon you? That plan was carefully thought

out, guarded well, or so she believed. You were to pour yourself into her own lord, as water can be poured into a cup. Through him you would father the son he

craved, while she saw (very poorly and ineptly, I must say) an eventual use for

such a child, to her own purposes. You were never a fool, Galkur. Could you not

foresee that a spell spun by such a one was not strong enough to hold even a fraction of Power, Dark or Light? Was a need for corporal life once more so strong in you? Having so poorly wrought, do you still say now that you are as you once were?"

A note of pity in that—enough to sting. Perhaps not real pity, I thought, rather

a shadow of that, rooted in contempt.

'So," the second voice continued, "you willingly lent yourself (or tried to do

so) to the fumbling incantations of a female whose pride and arrogance, among her own kind, were almost as great as yours have always been. And what came of

it?"

There was no intelligible reply, but the control the other held broke. I heard a

mighty cry, felt the blast of the smothering, fiery fury of his rage.

'You failed. You, Galkur, who in the past moved hills about as a player moves a

counter on a game board—you could not mend a faulty spell. So what you deemed,

in your pride, to be a small act became instead a large defeat. That game you began is not yet played out. Do you suppose that the sleeper does not sense what

you move to do now? That you think once more to work through men to achieve your

ends? He shall wake, and rest assured you shall not relish meeting him a second

time, Galkur. Can you not understand? It was not his full essence that entered

into the coupling, which was to serve you. Taking your place in that conception

drew upon only a fraction of his Power. He did not even stir in his slumber as

he launched a single shaft of will to defeat your plan.

"The Daleslord had his son, a little strange to be sure. But, when one petitions

aid from our kind, there is apt to be a change in mind or body, which always discloses such bargain. Your female knew from the birth hour that what she had

brought forth was not of her calling. She paid for that, did she not, Galkur?

Now you shall have to reckon with the sleeper, since this time I think he will

do more than just dream another life into being. You have meddled, and for that

you must face the consequences. So do not look to your new pieces to be any more

potent that that other was."

Once more the surge of anger scorched me with flames of hate.

"Our roads do not meet. What lies on mine you cannot begin to understand."

"I do not think that you understand either, Galkur. You were always too impulsive for your own good."

That calm second voice. I listened more closely, not only to catch the words, but for something else… Memory? I had heard it before, of that I was certain.

There had been a ridge top—a man in gray who gave me a horse… A man whose eyes

were so piercing that I felt them strike deep into my mind, read there every thought, good or ill, that I had ever harbored.

Neevor! He had said that that was his name for some people— he had—

Joisan—she had seen him, too. He had promised her—promised her—as I tried to catch that other shred of memory, I was suddenly aware of a new sensation.

Hidden in the dark, as I was, with only those two voices to assure me I was not

alone—when I had thought of Neevor there had come a change. They were now aware

of—me!

"Sasssss!"

The dark broke with a lightning swift strike of light, so intense my sight was

seared and a new dark enclosed me. I hung, I felt, in empty air, unsupported over a vast gulf into which I would drop—to fall on and on forever and ever!

Fear tasted bitter in my mouth, I swayed back and forth in the midst of a vast

whirlpool of force that struggled within itself—with me as the prize.

There was nothing I could do for my safety. I was helpless, at the mercy of whichever portion of those battled, intertwined powers won. In the meantime I endured such terror as I had never known. For if I hurtled into that gulf I knew

well that all that I was—Kerovan—would be gone, without hope—an extinction worse

than physical death.

Then…

As if a loop of cord I could not see shot through the dark to settle about me, I

was aware of a firm support that drew me from where Power still strove with Power. The dark was no less at first. Then, far down below (though not in the gulf, that was safely behind me now) there came a glimmer. Weak with the aftermath of terror I hung in the embrace of this new force, watching that light

grow larger and stronger.

Once more I was drawn into the hall of many pillars. This time I was very near

the dais. That which had sustained and brought me here ebbed away.

I looked down at the body of the Sleeper. What might have been grotesque by human standards was, I now perceived, glory and power. I felt no shrinking.

In

this sleeper was embodied grace and majesty no human lord could aspire to.

Even as I stood there, still weak from my ordeal above that evil gulf of dark, I

saw the eyelids twitch, arise slowly. I looked downward and our gaze locked…

Then—I could not remember! I could not remember! It became an ever-increasing ache, for my dream broke at that instant. There was left a need, a strong need,

for me to learn— Learn what? Even that I did not understand, save that I was the

less because I was not strong enough to hold and remember as I should have done.

I awoke into day and the ruined keep, with Joisan watching me—deep concern on her face. I did not want this—I wanted to be back there—to know…

Joisan—the desolation that had filled me when I thought she had been fatally caught in one of the evil traps of this land—the great burst of liberating joy

that had been mine only yesterday as she had come running into my arms and I knew not only that she was safe, but was where I could hold her…

Where had those feelings now gone? They might stir feebly still—somewhere. I think that they did, now so hidden and overridden by a drive possessing me that

I wished for nothing more than to have her gone.

So I actually urged her to go, out of my tormenting thirst for this other quest.

Though I knew, even as I spoke, that not only would her determination keep her

with me, but if she had chosen to return to the Dales I would be constricted to

see her out of the Waste and into safety and I could not have forced myself to

take the time for such a journey. This land held me now. I was sure I would never be free of its witchery—would be less than the half-man I already was if I

attempted to leave it.

As we rode out of the keep, found our way down again to the highway, I could force no words, make no effort to explain. She must have thought me deranged—or

ensorcelled. I was aware now and then that she was watching me with a frown of

deep concern, that she made an effort to keep close beside me.

But Joisan was only a shadow now, moving through a shadow world. What was real

were those two voices in the dark—Neevor and Galkur. That the latter was one of

the to-be-dreaded Dark Lords I had no doubt at all. Then—the sleeper… What had I

seen when his eyes opened and sought mine? What tie lay between us? A loose one,

perhaps, but one that would tighten— must tighten—of that I was convinced.

We rode through the morning and there were no words between us—at least I remember none. Then we camped at the edge of a great cut the Old Ones had slashed through the heights so that their road of many symbols and signs remained smooth and level. I sensed, even on the safety of that starred ground,

that there was peril nearby, closing in. It was true—the enemy I did not know was making his first move.

Joisan

WHAT I DESIRED MOST OF MY LORD WAS THAT HE UNDERSTAND ME. Understanding comes from within, it cannot be poured from another source. His greeting to me had been far warmer than I had dared to hope—even though he as speedily withdrew from the embrace. I would not make demands on him—I must approach him as warily

as a scout spying on an enemy camp.

Rain curtained the keep when we reached it, making of Kerovan only a shadow among other shadows. I wished for light that I might see him better, but there

was not even a fire. Because I must hear his voice I urged him to the telling of

his adventure— of his meeting with the Wereriders.

The idea of shape-shifting was not new. We of the Dales knew from childhood strange legends and scraps of lore. Still one could never be sure such tales were true. This was the first time I heard one with a core of hard fact.

"They must be masters of illusion," I ventured after he told me of a stallion who had reared behind the high lord's table, a snow cat crouched snarling beside

him. Illusions were the principal weapons of the Old Ones when dealing with men.

"I do not think so. Though they go armed and armoured, still their greatest weapon is their change. Even were that an illusion, it is a more potent one than

I have ever heard tell of—enough to rock any man."

"Do you think they will ride to join with the Dales?"

"I do not know. If they do, it will be the result of some bargain. They know that trouble is also rising in the Waste and they may fear battle nearer home.

They did not like my story of the Thas—those creatures of the underground.

"Imgry is a planner of battles, a builder of armies—mat is true. I think it is

also true that he has learned those from overseas came not just to harry the Dales. What they seek is a thing we do not yet understand."

"Some Power." I nodded in agreement. "Also a Dark one, for the invaders, showing

themselves to be what they are, could not treat with the Light." I felt my upper

lip tighten as if to lift in a cat's snarl.

The cats! With the rain without they must have taken refuge somewhere but not with us. Where were they, I wondered fleetingly.

"A Dark Power," Kerovan mused. "Could such a Power sense that it was being sought, gather in anticipation its own servants such as the Thas?"

"To what purpose? Any Dark Power would be to the Hounds as a Dale's lord to the

outlaws," I pointed out. "The invaders would soon discover that the evocation of

the forbidden must make them slaves under such a master as they could not dream

of—"

"Dream." Again he spoke as if for his own hearing. "Yes—a dream—"

"What kind of a dream?"

That he spoke of something important to him, I sensed. I wanted to know, I needed so much to know, all I could of him, his ways, his thoughts, even his dreams. This need was a rising surge of desire in me. I had to use all my control to contain and subdue it lest I break out with a myriad questions and he

turn from me again with even more coldness than he had shown. For until he opened gates, I could not enter—nor could I dare to try and force them.

"Just a dream." Now it was plain that he spoke to me in firm refusal to let me

share some important part of his life. Instead he spoke swiftly, as if he would

push all references to this from both my mind and his, asking of me an account

of my own adventures.

I wished again for light—that I could see his face, read any emotion that might

show there. Talking so in the dark was like lying under a hindering blindness.

We spoke also of Elys and Jervon whose escape from the Thas still lightened my

inner gloom. However, I longed so much to ask my lord if he had noted how well

they fared together—that they were two whom the Dales would say could not be joined in harmony yet still they were. Only that was another subject I knew, instinctively, I dare not speak of now.

So I made as plain a story as I could of my escape from the darkness through the

strange spell of the winged globe. And we talked of the cats. Later I showed Kerovan the ring that was the only remaining treasure of what must once have been a room of treasures, before I let in Time itself to loot and pillage.

When I showed the ring to him, his wristlet blazed so we both knew that my find

was in some way touched with Power. Yet I was certain that all it held about it

was the shadow of the old spell, for it never warmed for me as did the gryphon,

though it fitted itself to my finger as if that hoop had been fashioned to my size on purpose.

I dared greatly then to reach out my hand and clasp his. To my joy his fingers

tightened around mine, did not repulse me.

"If there was only some way to get you out of the Waste." He spoke forcibly and

his hand tightened on mine so that it brought pain. Still, the last thing I would do was try to free myself. "Imgry has his contact, that was all he desired. We could ride east…"

I did not try to argue with him. However, I knew, as well as if it had been shouted through the air of that dank, dark hall, that we would never ride back.

The Waste had set its mark on both of us—neither of us could stray far from it

again. I had nothing to return to—everything to lose if I went. Perhaps here I

could also dream and find my dream was true…

We settled for the night, apart—always apart. I wept a little, silently, in the

dark at another bit of hope that had come to nothing. It was not long before he

slept. I could hear his even breathing—and I so longed to see his face, to watch

over him as he slept… why I do not know, except that it then was a dear deep wish—as if so I could keep all harm and sorrow from him, stand between him and

ill dreams.

The gryphon at my breast glowed gently as I sat up again and laced my fingers about my knees, thinking things that hurt and made me despair. Then I saw a glow—eyes in the dark…

My hand twitched for the hilt of the knife my lord had given me. Still, almost

at once, I guessed who came thus silently, and fearing to speak aloud that I might wake my lord, I strove to set up thought-speech of my own.

"What passes?"

"Nothing passes," returned to me swiftly, and I believed I could recognize the

mind-speech of the male cat. "What do you wear on your finger, daughter of strangers?"

I held out my hand. The gem in the ring was also glowing a little, though less

than the gryphon.

Once more I shaped mind-words: "That which I found—in the barred chamber,"

though it came to me that the cat somehow already knew of my exploration. Did he

resent my prying into a secret I did not understand? I put out the fingers of my

other hand ready to rid myself of the ring should he demand that I do so.

"She who wore that once was a great lady." His thought was born out of some memory I could never share. "If you found it remaining—then take it as her free

gift. Through her will alone could it pass to another—"

"Who was she?" I dared to ask then.

"Names vanish with the years. She lived, she loved deeply, she had courage and

drew to her others of great heart. She went from us by her own choosing, in the

time that was right for her. Be content with that, daughter of strangers. But I

think she has this day favored you beyond even your understanding."

The eyes were gone, just as he was gone out of my mind. I wanted—yes—just as I

desired Kerovan's confidence, I wanted to learn more. But I knew that I never would. I lifted my ringed hand to my cheek, pressed the stone against my flesh.

It was smooth, it was… I had no words for what flowed out of it to comfort me then—like a hand laid on a fever-hot forehead, a cool drink held to parched lips. I lay down once again and now I rested content, pushing away the future,

knowing only that my lord rested within my reach and slept, and we were together

so that anything might come of that—and I did not think what would follow from

this hour would rend my heart.

I slept lightly so that, as the morning light found a thin way inward, I sat up,

grimacing as I stretched against the stiffness of limbs. There had been no bed

of grass this night and the saddlebag on which I had pillowed my head had not been the softest of supports.

There was a sound. I looked quickly to Kerovan. His hair lay dank on a sweated

forehead, there was that in his face which made me gasp. His eyes were shut—a dream? But what manner of dream could bring such agony as now he showed?

Then that twisted expression smoothed away and his face held a curious unalive

look. His features might have been chiseled from warm brown stone—lacking any spark of life. He was as a monument raised to honor some hero long since gone.

I had not seen him lie so for a long time—stripped of the defenses he used when

he waked. He had been thus for the first two or three days when we had traveled

out of the Waste on our way back from the battle with Rogear and that she-devil

who might have given birth to my lord but was no mother. Then he had been weak

and shaken from the ordeal of meeting those two Power to Power.

Now for the first time I speculated about Neevor's words after that struggle.

He

had called my lord "kinsman" and had said that Kerovan had been someone else in

part. Also I remembered how my lord had tossed a name at his mother as one might

hurl a spear, and how she had been struck by the force of it.

What lay behind all this I could not know. Nor had Kerovan after that action ever spoken of it. The Wereriders had told him to find his kind. Perhaps that was what the two of us must now do.

The Dales—I shook my head determinedly. We had done our duty there. My people were as safe as I could make them, Kerovan had carried out Imgry's orders. We were free of High Hallack.

Then I realized the strangeness of that thought, for I am full Dales blood.

Yet—I cupped the gryphon globe, pressed it tightly to me. All my life I had been

told that it was a perilous thing for one of my heritage to have any dealings with the things of the Old Ones. I thought of my appeal to Elys—that she tutor

me in use of a talent like unto that which she controlled. I had been wrong.

She

had known that and had evaded me. That was not the way for me. One could learn

some things, yes—the wording of spells, the incantations necessary to build up

within one's self the strength of the Power. But Power itself did not come so—it

lay within.

The gryphon had served me in the dark when I needed it, only I had discovered its value and use for myself. I had willed it. What else might it do if I tried?

I Fingered it now and speculated.

I was not the same Joisan who had fled with her people out of Ithdale. What was

I then? That I must discover for myself. Even as my lord must discover who he was and what he was. I accepted at last that the quest was for him at that moment the most important factor in his whole existence.

As this fell into place in my mind and I knew such understanding, Kerovan's eyes

opened. However, that stony, locked-in look did not fade.

"A good day." I summoned cheerfulness, making sure that I would not be turned aside by any coldness from him. "A smooth road lies yonder in the plains—and it

will lead us . ." I used some of the old morning greeting then, adding to it such words as favored our purposes.

He sat up, running fingers through his hair, so that the tumble of it stood nearly as erect as a cock comb. His eyes slid away, would not meet mine. I saw

his lips thin and tighten, as if he faced up to some duty he disliked but could

not avoid.

I longed to ask what was the matter, knew the greater wisdom lay in remaining silent, awaiting what he chose to tell me. Until he opened a door for me, I must

not strive to reach the inner part, which I was sure was the real Kerovan—the one who hid himself with such desperation.

He arose without a word. Turning his back on me, he strode to the doorway, looked out into the courtyard, as if for some reason he did not want me to see

his face. Or was it that he did not want to look upon mine?

"Will you take the mare, the pack pony, and ride? You need only head due east."

He said that with his back firmly to me.

Then he whirled about, as if he heard the scrape of an enemy's boot, was prepared to front the foe. That locked-in look was gone from his face. I read instead twisted pain there—a pain that brought me to my feet and a step or two

toward him.

He flung out a hand to ward me off. In spite of my good resolution of holding to

patience, I felt torment then.

"I—cannot—go." The pause came between each word as if those were forced out of

him, that the very shaping of them hurt.

"By the heat of the True Flame!" His voice soared like a battle cry meant to rally a forlorn hope, "I must go—west!" His hands lifted to cover his face and,

from behind that screen, came more words, muffled and with a chill of despair.

"This may be a trap—I cannot save myself—but you—go you must!"

"Kerovan!" I used his name with authority, determined that he listen to me.

"I,

too, have a choice—" My control broke. I covered the distance between us and my

fingers closed about his wrists. With a strength I did not know I possessed, I

pulled his hands down, so I could look into his eyes.

His face was certainly alive now! There was a wry twist to his lips, his eyes blazed like pieces of amber in the full of the sun. I have seen flaming anger written on men's faces before, but this was a rage, controlled, still enough to

shake me. However, I did not loose my hold on him. So we stood, linked by touch,

though I knew at any moment he might fling me off.

"I ride with you." I said levelly. "As has always been my choice. You could leave me here bound and captive, and in some way I would free myself to follow."

'Don't you understand?" he demanded harshly. "I do not want you. You are nothing

but a hindrance, I do not hold you by any duty. I have said that many times over. I want no lady! Also—I am done with the Dales! Wholly done with you!"

Now that I observed him closely, I could detect that there was an oddness about

him. He would not meet my eyes, and as emphatically as he spoke, there was a note in his voice as if he were saying words that were put into his mouth.

This

was not any Kerovan whom I had seen. I remembered the anguish of his sleeping face—and I drew a deep breath.

He did not hurt me with words that came that way, though he acted now as if even

my person disgusted him—so that I might never hope to find with him what Elys had found with Jervon. Yes—this was what he was meant to do—meant to do! What spell had been laid upon him in his sleep? Now that I looked at him keenly, I could see that, though his eyes were turned in my direction, there was an odd,

unfocused look to them as if he did not see me, or perhaps even know where he was and what he did.

Only I was no maid soft from keep living. I had thrown aside all that when I rode forth from Norsdale. I had learned—a little. I felt that something dire lay

ahead—a battle perhaps, a bitter one. Still I could face that when it came.

He

might not drive me away with words.

"Well enough." I spoke slowly now. "We are two people alone in a land that is not welcoming. Just as alone we shall go on to whatever lies ahead."

He blinked as one who was only just waking. At the change in his face I dropped

my hold on him. He shook his head as one shaking away some tenuous thing fallen

across one's face.

"The rain has stopped. It is not a bad day…"

I stood confounded by the change in him. He might only now have come to the doorway. All those wild hurting words he had uttered might never have been voiced. Because I must have some explanation for this I dared to ask, "Have you

dreamed again?"

"Dreamed?" he repeated as might one who had never heard that word before, or did

not understand it. "Perhaps. When one sleeps, dreams come. I—I think"—he spoke

hesitatingly as one who is a little dazed—"I am under command again—and this time none of Imgry's. It is better you do not ride with me."

"You have often professed"—I pointed out carefully (I mistrusted his manner.

Had

the real Kerovan again been taken over by another in some fashion? I knew that I

must be very alert now)—"that you care enough for me not to want me to come to

harm. I cannot ride alone here." I stressed my helplessness—a helplessness I did

not in the least feel. "Have I not already barely survived one of the Dark traps, and that by such good fortune as I may never hope to meet again?"

"You are free," he said dully, all the fire and life seeping out of him, the shut-away look back again, as if he were encased by a barrier I could not pierce.

"But you are not? Remember, Kerovan, once I did not go free either. I was taken

to serve the Dark. What did you then?"

He swung away from me as if he did not hear my words any more. Years of age might have settled on him. "You do not understand," he mumbled.

I wanted to shake him, to tear out of him somehow what made him this way. At the

same time I knew that such action would be no use. He had dropped down beside the pack he had lifted from the pony last night, was fumbling out the packet of

food.

"They do not suspect—" He was speaking in a monotone and I shivered, realizing

that he did not talk to me—he was lost somewhere and I had no way of drawing him

forth from the shadows where he now wandered. "No, they do not know what they would rouse—those fools from overseas. Their attack on the Dales—but a ruse.

He

has summoned them."

"Kerovan"—I knelt beside him to ask gently, "who is this he? Is he out of your

dream?"

He shook his head. "I cannot tell. It is not 'will not' but 'cannot. I was—

No,

I do not know where I was. But there is one who waits—and I must go."

"So we ride," I answered with all the courage I could summon. I felt almost as

if I companied now with a dying man, one who moved and spoke, but whose inner part might be extinguished—or near that. I tried to remember the name he had called in that battle of Powers—but I could not. Perhaps it was the kind of name

lips such as mine might not even shape.

I found this loss of the Kerovan I knew far more fearsome than when he rode out

of Norsdale. Had we shared more, had we known each other in a true uniting, perhaps he could not have been so easily enspelled. Yet I would not let him go.

There must be some way I could bring to life again the real Kerovan.

Eating but little, I busied myself with the packets Elys had left among the pony's gear. I had fresh underlinen at last, and a comb to put my hair in order.

I longed for the weapons I had lost to the Thas. Kerovan had not asked that I return his knife so I slipped it into my own belt sheath.

Before we left I took the chance of gathering some more of the melons, adding them to our food supply. There was no sign of the cats.

Kerovan kept silence, one I did not try to break. Sometimes his eyes crossed me,

but it was as if I were invisible. So we went forth from the ruins, leading our

animals down to the highway.

Kerovan insisted that I ride the mare, while he led the pony and walked beside

me.

The wrack of the storm was visible in broken branches and sodden grass, but overhead the sun arose. While always the road bored on toward the heights, or as

we discovered—through them!

The labor that had gone into the making of that cut, allowing forbidding walls

to remain on either side, amazed me. This must have taken the work of years—or

else was the result of potent magic, well beyond the comprehension of our breed.

We stopped just before entering that cut to eat and drink, allowing the animals

to graze.

Many times during our journey I had felt that, while Kerovan's body strode beside me, the real man was gone. I was chilled, my hopes dwindled. If he was in

the grip of an adept of the Old Ones, now could I free him?

As I used the knife to cut a melon he suddenly spoke. "You have not chosen well."

"The choice was mine," I returned shortly.

"Therefore the results shall be on your own—"

What harsh or bitter prophecy he might have added was never voiced. I saw his eyes go wide; his gaze shifted from me to a point beyond my shoulder. There was

a strong sensation of cold—as if a wind blew over numbing ice—striking my upper

back.

Kerovan was on his feet, that trance-like state broken. I saw, under the shadow

of his helm, the same face he must have shown to any Hounds he met steel to steel.

That cold bored into me. This was no tangible weapon—yet it could kill. I threw

myself to one side, rolled, and then levered my body up again. Kerovan stood, a

little crouched, as if ready to spring. He had not, however, drawn sword.

While

what waited there just beyond the border of the road…

A woman, dark of hair, slender of body, her face contorted in a mask of hatred

and despair, a demon's countenance, was there. Though a breeze stirred the grass

about her, her robe did not sway, nor did her veil move. I knew her… But she was

dead! Consumed by her own foul magic.

The Lady Temphera, who had consorted with the Dark to produce a son, then failed

when that son proved to be other than she had planned, stood watching us with the stark hatred of her last moments of life.

She was dead! I would not accept what I saw. This was some trickery.

Kerovan moved as I stumbled to my feet, held tightly to the gryphon. I refused

to be frightened by a shadow out of the past.

There was no wand in her hand. No, that had been shattered with the core of her

Power during that other meeting. Nor did she raise her hands in any gesture to

summon forces. She only stood, staring at her repudiated son with those burning

eyes. Not eyes—rather holes in a skull from which skin and flesh withered as I

watched.

"Fool!" That was Kerovan who spoke. Once more his face was impassive. "Fool!"

He

held up his hand. On his wrist that band of blue blazed. A streamer of light shot toward the woman's death head. The ray appeared to strike a barrier, spread

out horizontally across it.

"Show yourself!" Kerovan's lips drew back in a wolfs grin. He commanded as one

very sure of himself and his own might.

The illusion (if it were that) moved. Swiftly the right arm swung up. She showed

a clenched hand as the long sleeve fell away. Then she threw what she held. A flashing streak came through the air.

Straight for Kerovan's head spun that missile. He moved as swiftly, his arm across his face. I heard a noise as loud as a thunder clap—saw a burst of radiance, so that I blinked and blinked to clear my sight.

Through a watery haze I watched the woman sway. The bale-fire hate, which burned

in the eyeholes, spread, consumed, until the head of the apparition was a horrible, blackened mass. The blaze ate on down her body. She seemed to be trying to raise her hands in futile defense, the fingers left trails of black in

the air. I wanted to close my eyes, still I could not.

"Is this the best you can send against me?" Kerovan's voice swelled, carried, so

that the walls of the cut ahead echoed it back to us. "To evoke the dead is a weakness."

"Weakness—weakness…" echoed back.

The horror shriveled, grew smaller, was gone. Kerovan stood, stone-faced, to watch it be so consumed. When the last blackened shred vanished he turned to me.

"This is only the first sending. Perhaps the least of such, merely to test us,

or as a warning."

"It is—or was—a very impotent one." I found my voice.

Kerovan shook his head. "We cannot be sure. We can never be sure of any Power…"

He stroked the band on his wrist with his other hand. "I think that we shall never again walk, or lie, or rest easy in this land—never until we have a final

meeting—

"With Temphera? But she is dead—"

"With another whose identity I do not know, who will use against me—and you because you are with me—all he can summon, perhaps to our ending."

Still he did not look hopeless or even troubled, as he said that. Nor was his face again closed or bleak. A new life had appeared there. I sensed he was excited, had been stirred fully awake rather than alarmed by what had been meant

as a dire warning.

Kerovan

"WHEN I FRONTED WHAT HAD ARISEN, BLACK AND SEAR, OUT OF THE past I felt that time had turned upon itself. This was she who had given me birth but had never

been a mother. Only now she stood alone, lacking Rogear with all his ill-used,

half-learned Power. Also, that symbol of her authority, the wand, was gone, having been shattered into nothingness when we had fought out our struggle in the past. Still, my hand arose, as if my arm was weighted with a shield and not

with the wrist band that had served me so well.

Words came to me, not so much my own thoughts, as they were those of that other

who was rousing now, once more within me, a presence—an essence—I feared.

Still

I could not wall out that intruder any more than all our struggles had served to

keep Alizon's Hounds from baying across the Dales.

Even while I spoke those words, as if I were trained in sorcery, I turned my will upon the band, calling for a force that lay within it. I did not consciously understand what I said, what I did, only that this was the way I must meet this—this thing. For that it was a dead woman restored to malicious life—that I did not quite believe.

A spear of light answered my plea, struck at the head of the illusion, met a shield of such strength that it could not break it, ran across the shield seeking a way through, to consume the dead-alive.

I saw her turn into the specter of death. Her hands moved jerkily then as if cords were fastened to her wrists pulling them this way and that. To no purpose,

for she had not been aided by any fear from me—she who was the embodiment (or meant to be) of horror and disgust. Without any emotion from us to strengthen her, she was burning away. Her old hate once more consumed her utterly. Who had

striven to use her thus—and why?

Foul black trails in the air streamed from those hands. But they faltered, could

not finish any symbol they so fought to form. I felt a contempt within me. if this was a show of Dark Power it was a paltry one. Surely no real adept had brought such a champion into our struggle.

Was the illusion then indeed Temphera herself, a long-lasting residue of evil once more provided with visible form because her strong hatred of me had survived even death itself? Perhaps in the Waste even so flawed a talent as hers

could do this when signs and portents were right.

Only—she failed. Death ate her up a second time, perhaps firing her own hate to

such a heat that it was able to consume her. She was gone. I watched for a long

moment after her semblance had crumbled into ash, half expecting a second attempt. If this was some work of that Galkur—yet surely such as he could have

provided a much stronger threat.

Joisan's voice startled me. During those moments when I had confronted hatred come alive I had forgotten her.

"She was an illusion—was she not an illusion, Kerovan? She—I know she is dead!"

Had I been quicker-witted, less still caught up in what had happened, I might have answered more prudently, rather than with what might well have been the truth.

"She hated me very much. Perhaps—in this country of Power— some portion of her

did live on and when it gathered strength enough—"

"Can it be true that hate lives past death?" I saw Joisan shiver as she stared

now at me.

The shell that had encased me since my dream of the night had cracked, fallen away when I had roused to do battle. I went to her and took her into my arms.

They played with us, these holders of Power. Now I wanted nothing of them—neither aid nor attack. What I desired was to fight against them—all of them! There was only one way to do that, I now sensed. I must keep myself part

of the real world—be Kerovan. Joisan was my anchor. My anchor? That sounded as

if the poison of Power had already touched me, that I had begun to look upon her

as an object to be used for my own purposes.

Joisan was real. She was love, not hate, though I could not release any answering emotion that I could believe was truly love. I was not using Joisan—I

would not' But, even as I so argued and doubted within myself, I held her tighter.

Her body fitted itself to mine as if two halves had been joined to form—at last—a whole. I kissed her for the second time since I had known her, had come

to realize the depth of her courage and spirit. She herself was the truest and

finest thing a man might ever discover in a world full of deceit, mystery, and

the darkness of evil.

We clung together, and now I was glad that my mother's rage had sought us out.

For this joining was surely stronger than any intrigue of the Waste.

A lock of her hair fell free across her face and I kissed that also, gently, aware of a fragrance that clung to it as if she had worn a garland of sweet-scented flowers until their life had become a part of her. Her hands lay

again on my shoulders, leather light, still I could feel the dear pressure of them through both mail and leather—and so I always would.

"Kerovan"—she was a little breathless—"if it takes foul illusion to so bring you

to me, then may we be often so assailed!"

Once more I set my lips to hers, hoping that she could not read me. For only a

few moments snatched out of time I had been a man—a whole man. Now that other compulsion—though I tried to fight it—settled about me once more, with an even

tighter grip. I kissed her… but the feeling had gone.

She set her hands swiftly against my chest and pushed herself tree for I had at

once relinquished my hold. When she looked at me, there was desolation in her eyes and her hurt reached me even though I was fast losing the sense of feeling.

I could no longer respond as I longed—yes!—as I longed, even under the

—spell,

to do.

"You—you have left me again." Her voice was very low and uneven as if she were

close to tears, save that pride stiffened her. "Why do you so? What is there in

me to which you cannot warm?" She wrung her scratched and sun-browned hands together with a gesture of one who is pushed close to the edge of endurance.

The

rosy hue of her ring—even it appeared to be touched with gray at this moment.

I swung around, no longer any more able to look upon her standing there—the brightness of her look, the beauty of her eyes, her face. That other inside me

was fighting hard to stay alive—fighting with a strength that would have rocked

my very body from side to side had I given way to it. Only for him there was no

hope. I was bound to a future I did not understand or desire, into which perhaps

not even Joisan, for all her greatness of heart, could follow me.

"The fault lies not in you—never in you," I got out harshly. "Never believe that

it is you who have failed." To allow her to think that was a cruelty I could not

bear. "It is mine—a curse laid upon me. Believe that, it is true, believe it!"

Once more I made myself face her. I wanted to lay hands upon her shoulders, to

shake her until she promised me she would do as I asked. This was the stark truth—that I had nothing to give her, and I would not take and take until she was as ashy as the ring upon her hand—a love token I had not been able to give

her. She must understand!

"I believe," she answered me then. Her hands fell to her sides. She stood straight, head up, her face sober, but with that heart-tearing look gone out of

it. "I believe, yes. Only, I also believe that there is still my Lord Amber imprisoned somewhere inside of you, and he shall come to me again."

Lord Amber? For a moment I was puzzled—until the cords of memory tightened.

That

was the name she had given me when I first found her in the wilderness, leading

her people—when she had accepted me as one of the Old Ones, who had somehow been

moved to come to their aid.

"You are him, and you are Kerovan," she was continuing, "also you may be another. But in all of you I have found nothing that will send me from you.

Nor

can you do this— ever!"

There was no arguing with her. I must accept that her will was unbendable as the

sword at my belt. I was afraid—for her. I wanted to ride—to run—but I must accept.

We prepared to spend the night at that campsite in spite of the evil thing that

had materialized there. Before us lay the high-walled cut where the road ran on—already shadowed—and I had no desire to travel it in a time when the dusk was

double thick. Once more, unable to really rest, I watched the footprints that appeared, clouded and then clear, as if many walked there, unseen, unheard in this world. Sleep was very far away. In fact I did not want to yield to it since

dreams might lay in wait. I had had my fill of dreams.

Nor did it appear that Joisan wanted rest either. Instead, she sat beside me, also watching the road, one hand cupping the englobed gryphon tightly against her breast.

"They walk—" She broke the long silence between us in so soft a voice it was hardly above a whisper. "I wonder—are those unseen ones alive but ensorcelled,

so that they must endlessly journey this road? Or are they but shadows out of the past whose memories linger so?"

I was surprised, though I should not have been, that she also was able to mark

the slight dimming and brightening of those prints.

"I think," she added, "that they go upon some mission—yet their time, their world is no longer ours. Kerovan"—she changed the subject so quickly that she startled me into answering as I had not meant to—"what of your dream? Was it perhaps of another world or time?"

"I do not know. I—" A hand might then have been slapped hard across my mouth, silencing me. I could not, even if I would, tell her of that dream. If dream it

was.

"Kerovan!" Joisan's hand caught now at my arm, though she had been careful not

to touch me since I had closed my heart to her earlier. "Look!"

Farther along, within the walls of the cut, where the road lay like a white ribbon between two towering, blank walls—that was where she was pointing.

Something else could be seen beside the night-induced shine of the symbols, the

stars, and the flow of footprints.

Dark clots fell from the heights to strike upon the pavement, spread out in evil-appearing blots across its surface. I could think of nothing save the action of one of those war machines I had seen under construction in Imgry's camp, designed to hurl rocks into the heart of an enemy advance.

There was, in turn, a rising shimmer of light from the road itself. The fall of

stones (the sharp impact of which we could hear) and the earth continued. Was this some effort to bury the highway, seal off what protection existed along that moon-bright length?

I was on my feet, reaching down to draw Joisan up beside me.

"We must go—now!" If the road was sealed we were lost! Again knowledge that was

not mine came alive in my mind as if it had been planted there to await this very happening.

She looked at me steadily and then nodded. "If this must be done—then let us to

it. Leave the packs. I can ride the pony— you take Bural."

We grabbed the closest of our supplies and water bottles, leaving the rest of the gear. As usual, neither animal showed any fear of the road—not at first.

Ahead black masses heaped together, but they did not stay so for long. Rather the mounds melted, running off in besmirching rivulets. The very touch of the pavement appeared to transform solid into liquid and send it flowing.

"That smell—Thas!" Joisan cried.

I caught it, too, the same stench that had arisen from the churned earth back in

the meadow trap, only stronger, more offensive. Now the mare threw up her head

with a loud whinny, answered by the pony. They balked, so it was all I could do

to force my mount forward. Joisan would not allow her smaller steed to hold back; I could hear her voice crooning encouragement.

The fallen earth was running in streams from the road's surface as rain might be

channeled from stone, while that stomach-turning stench grew the worse. I saw movement higher above, far up the sides of the cut walls, though I could not make out clearly the form of the creatures laboring so frenziedly there, attempting to wall us away from the mountain land. They did grow more visible as

they dropped farther down in their endeavor to start landslides. Perhaps, as they appeared to be failing in their struggle to barricade the road, they were

now determined to launch a personal attack—to catch us as they had netted Joisan—using the earth as best they could, since that was their tool of power.

The mare's front hooves thudded into the first runnel of the black soil. She cried out as I had never heard one of her kind give voice before, gave a convulsive leap forward as if she had stepped into a mass of live coals. I heard

a heavy sucking as her feet pulled free.

"Keep moving—fast!" I flung the order back at Joisan and drew my sword.

She did not need that command, for she was slapping the pony's rump with one hand, flogging the small beast on. The black flood was thick around the feet of

both animals, seeming to circle about as if it was trying, like a bog, to suck

us down. Then I saw that the globed gryphon was waxing brighter and brighter.

From it came a beam of bright light. Around my own wrist the band awoke to life

in a circle of cold flame.

Joisan lifted the chain from around her neck and began to swing the globe. As it

passed thus through the air the light blazed even higher and brighter. I watched

the sticky black tide on the road curl back from that radiance, as living flesh

might shrink from a threat of pain or dissolution.

My companion kneed her pony on, and the animal quieted, as did the mare, once that blaze swept briefly across her head. Now my lady led, and the black earth

not only melted from her path, but those masses of earth and stone that were still falling were deflected, providing us with a narrow path of safety.

I could hear our attackers. Where before they had moved in silence, scuttling through the dark which was their cover, now they uttered guttural cries from the

heights on either hand. Their shadowy forms scrambled and shifted. I was sure they had sent parties down both walls to intercept us. Only they could not, dared not, venture on the road itself.

Our two mounts were sweating; the rank animal smell cut off some of the stench

of the Thas. The beasts tossed their heads, but they kept steadily on until we

reached the far side of the earth slides.

The scrambling along the cliffs intensified. I braced myself for an attack, which might well come if they were desperate enough at our escape. Joisan actually then tossed the globe in the air as if it were a ball. By the wide sweep of its light I saw clearly, for an instant, a creature that threw a stubby

arm across its eyes, squealed, and fled, clinging to the wall as it climbed, after the way of a lizard. Haired all over it was, and from the tangled mass that covered the lump of its head, pale disks, marking eyes, were turned in our

direction before it gained the dark beyond the light's reach.

Now safe beyond the bombardment of the avalanche, our mounts broke into their fastest gait and we did not try to halt their boneshaking run. Better to gain as

much distance beyond the present perches of the Thas as we could. I hoped that

those creatures could not keep up with us, though the form I had seen had not suggested that its stunted body was meant for longdistance running.

Straight as a sword blade, and now as bright as the moonlight would lie on such

a blade, the road lay open before us. We needed that brightness, as the gleam of

Joisan's ball torch waned steadily, while the rise of the dark cliffs on either

side increased with every stride mare and pony covered. We might be riding at the bottom of a deep gulf…

A deep gulf? I felt cold rise in me—the gulf of my dream! Only here I was at the

bottom, not riding through the sky—or the space above. I turned my head up and

back. Now I could see the night sky—a sprinkling of pallid stars there, so far

above… It was as if I were caught, encased. I tried to breathe deeply, to fill

my lungs with air, which my body suddenly craved, as if I had been indeed buried

in the fluid earth that now lay behind.

I looked to Joisan, saw, to my alarm, that her body was drooping. She gripped with both hands, not the rope hackmore we had improvised for the pony, but the

animal's mane.

"Joisan!"

I urged the mare closer. At my cry she raised her head a fraction, turned a face

that was hardly more than a white blur toward me. Just in time I reached her side, caught and steadied her body as she went limp, her eyes closed, ready to

slide from her perch on the pony's back.

"Joisan!"

I held her by an arm about her waist, though the pony snorted as my mare nudged

against it and strove to draw away. Somehow I managed to take my lady fully into

my arms where she lay unmoving. her head against my shoulder, face upward, her

eyes still closed.

"Joisan!" For the third time, and most urgently, I called her name.

The globe on her breast was dead, not even a small, wan light marked its power.

Burned out? Had that valiant use of it to bring us safely through the Thas attack exhausted whatever energy could be summoned from it?

And Joisan—what had that drain of will done to her? I remembered her story of how she had willed the gryphon to lead her from the cavern underground and that

its response had weakened her. Perhaps to use it again in such a short time had

been too much for her. I raged at my own impotence. It had been Joisan alone who

had brought us through this battle with the Dark—no credit to me. Now what could

I do to bring her aid—or comfort…

"Joisan!"

At my fourth call I saw her eyelids flutter. She sighed, but neither looked at

me nor spoke. I doubted that the mare could carry double for long. So I must push as far as I could, for it was plain that Joisan was in no condition to ride

the pony now. To stay where these earth cliffs loomed above was folly. What the

Thas had tried once they could easily assay again, and this time they might well

be successful. We must win through this gorge— if it had any end—which, looking

ahead, I began grimly to wonder.

I bound my lady to the mare's saddle—her lighter weight would be easier on the

mount. The pony could not carry me, but I had those sturdy hooves—and I could put them to good use. The pavement was very smooth underfoot. I began to trot,

discovering I could easily match my speed to that of the mare. The pony edged up

beside me on the other side, for I kept close to Joisan, fearing that the lashings might slip and allow her to fall.

She was like one in a deep sleep, not moving except to the swing of the mare.

I

divided my attention between her and the heights on either side. Though I tried

to listen for any sound above the clop of hooves from our two beasts, I heard nothing.

That stench was no longer in my nostrils. However, I knew that the earth itself

obeyed the will of those hairy creatures and it might be they could still summon

up some peril from it to strike at us. I dared not trust any surface beyond that

of the road itself.

The rest of that night (it was not a dream, for my dreams had been more real than this—at least the dreams that had plagued me of late) finally passed. I moved as I had in the cold season when I had been on scout and caught in some storm wherein the misery of my body pulled at me until I might come to camp.

Pain shot up my stiffened legs as I footed on. After an interval I realized that

the pace of the mare had fallen to a walk, that she breathed in great snorts, while the pony now plodded three or four lengths behind, its head drooping.

Still it followed doggedly.

Dull-eyed, I looked about me. The heights had dropped somewhat. They no longer

appeared to reach to the sky. I stood for a space, the mare blowing again.

Fumbling at the saddle I brought out my water bottle, took a sip. which left me

avid for more. Yet we had left our camp so quickly this was all we had and Joisan would need it, too.

She lay forward, stretched with one arm on either side of the mare's neck, her

face half hidden in rough strands of mane. I made no effort to rouse her.

Better

that she sleep until we could reach some point of safety—if sleep she now did.

I

felt her dangling hand and it seemed warm to my touch—was she fevered? But I could not see to her yet, not as long as we remained within the least rise of those walls.

I urged the mare on, though she moved no faster than a walk, would stop now and

then until I pulled at the reins, or slapped her rump. So intent was I on keeping her moving that I had not realized we had worn out the night until I saw

the gray gleams of predawn lighting the mounds of earth on either side, the paling of the road.

It was a matter of the stumbler leading the stumbling when we came at last to the end of that cut, crossed a valley and—

The road came to an end!

I wavered on my feet staring up at the rockwall of what was a mountain, a mountain planted directly before our faces. Straight into that the road ran—and

stopped as if the mountain had been raised from its stone roots somewhere else

and dumped to cut off our path.

Somehow I got Joisan down. There was no going farther. We were enough in the open so that we could not be attacked here without seeing the enemy well in advance of any rush. I was done out, and both mounts exhausted. The valley had a

trickling stream, which flowed not too far away and there was grass growing.

I

laid Joisan down, to be supported by the pack which I rolled from its straps, making her as comfortable as I could.

Her face was pale, she lay limp under my hands. If she still slept, the rest was

very deep. Unsaddled, the mare sought water, to dip muzzle deep into the stream

beside the pony. I dropped down beside Joisan, took her beringed hand in both of

mine, my own head nodded, in spite of the need I knew to be on guard.

I was too tired now to think of what lay ahead—save that the rise of that mountain drew the heart out of me. That we should win up its stark sides with no

supplies, no sustenance, in this grim land—no, that was beyond any power.

My head must have fallen forward…

Then…

The need—the burning need—which seized upon me filled me so it drove out all I

had clung to—that part of Kerovan who was a man—the part that reached to Joisan

and a life he understood. I was—another .

Joisan

I AWOKE IN THE LIGHT OF DAY, ROUSING OUT OF CONFUSED DREAMS and fear. There had

been a great darkness, and, veiled by it, evil had moved. Even faint memories of

that made me shudder. The specter of the Lady Temphera might not have been potent, but worse had faced us in our flight up the road. That the Dark had not

raised power enough to engulf us wholly puzzled me, for I did not see in what manner we could have withstood such an attack. I had once more used my will upon

the globe and—

Now I raised my head to look about. I lay on the surface of the road, half supported by a small pack. There was no lingering stench of Thas here.

Turning

very slowly, for action was, I discovered, a great effort to which I had to bend

all my will and energy, I saw that the heights of the cut no longer loomed over

us. We must have somehow won through though I had no memory of the latter part

of that flight. Before us now was the wall of a true mountain, its crest so wreathed by mist or clouds that one could not tell how high it reached into the

sky.

The road ran straight into the first upward slope and then… At that point it was

as cleanly cut as if some Power had moved the mountain here as an insurmountable

barrier. There was only rock—cracked, stained—bearing signs, I believed, of having stood a heavy assault by some fierce force.

Directly before this stood Kerovan, his back to me, his arms hanging by his sides. His fingers continually wrapped into fists, only to loosen again. His body was taut, tense, as if he were half devoured by the need to gain what he wanted.

Somehow I got to my feet, took an unsteady step. My body was again as weak as if

I had but crawled out of a bed wherein fever had sapped my strength. Yet, when I

moved, there came a slow inflow of energy. Kerovan remained oblivious, as if only the mountain now mattered.

I staggered to where I could see his face. His features were grimly set in a mask of determination. Suddenly he drew his sword, took a quick step forward, and tried to force the tip of the blade into a crack that ran jaggedly down the

stone.

When I looked more closely at the wall, in this full light, I could see that once there must have existed an opening there, which had been sealed by force,

for the stone was fire darkened, and, in some places, looked as congealed as the

lumps of metal scavengers brought out of the Waste. Though what could possibly

melt rock?

He thrust fruitlessly at the crack, prying until his steel rang in warning and I

half expected to see the blade break off short. With a gesture born of anger and

frustration, Kerovan threw the sword from him, to clatter across the roadway, while he strode forward, to stand with his hands pressed palm flat on the rock,

his held a little forward until his helm clashed against the mountain barrier.

I had half raised my hands. Then it caught at me. The gryphon—I clutched at it

quickly—a protective talisman. Kerovan—could it be Kerovan who sent forth such

waves of energy as left me trembling?

His shoulders tensed the stiffer. Outward spread that aura of power, now holding

me where I was. I even believed that I saw a haze of light outline his body.

My

skin prickled and the short hairs about my forehead stirred of themselves.

Between my hands the globe began to glow.

He was using his will—all the inner strength he could call upon, even as I had

done. That backwash of force caught me, held me prisoner, immobile now, unable

even to speak.

His body became slowly tenuous, as if solid flesh and bone thinned, was only a

vessel holding something else. I found that sight so frightening I strove to close my eyes—yet I could do nothing else but watch that titanic battle; for battle it was—a man's strength pitted against ancient, immovable stone.

Thinner grew Kerovan's form, he was only a shadow of a man now. My own fear made

me draw once more on what lay within me. If Kerovan was to vanish, then I must

still seek him—he must not leave me so! I had thought, upon awakening, that my

strength of will was exhausted. I discovered now that there are reserves within

us all that are not known to exist unless some great task must be faced.

The globe—I had only that. I lifted it in both hands, held it above the level of

Kerovan's hunched shoulders. If he must, for some reason, win through this rock,

then I would do what I could to aid.

This time it was not the globe that took on life and fire—but the gryphon itself! I saw its small figure move and that was not just my fancy. The globe shattered—fragments as thin as powder shifted through my fingers. A prisoner long confined was at last free! Not only free, but growing. For a moment its weight rested between my palms. Then those wings fanned the air…

The gryphon trumpeted, voicing such a note of triumph and exultation that my heart leaped in answer. Then the creature spiraled up, beating wings against the

air so long denied it. For the space of a bream or two it circled about our heads, always growing—first as large as a mountain eagle, then so huge that the

very shadow of its outstretching wings shut out the sun.

Those red eyes were aglow with fierce fire, its hooked beak opened, and once more it sounded its cry. Having tried its wings, it wheeled, to fly straight at

the barrier against which Kerovan, seemingly unaware of it, still labored uselessly to force an entrance.

I caught my breath. The great flying thing (it might have topped Kerovan had it

alighted on the road) did not swerve, rather hurtled like a bolt at the wall.

And—just as Kerovan had earlier appeared to grow tenuous, so now did the wall become smoke. Into that winged the gryphon, vanishing from sight. Behind, Kerovan stumbled ahead, as well he might when the solid barrier against which he

had leaned was suddenly withdrawn. "Able to move once again I threw myself after

him, fearing that the two of them might be lost to me.

There followed a fear-filled sensation of deep dark and cold, of being hurtled

through a space in which my kind had no life. I could not breathe, yet I willed

myself on.

Then I was in another place. Those are the only words I can find to describe it—another place. For I will always believe that I went out of the world meant

to nourish my people, entering into one so different, so answerable to other laws and customs that I was or would be forever lost. For, in my folly, I had gone unprepared and alone.

No, I' was not alone. I saw Kerovan rise from his knees. He must have sprawled

on his face as the barrier gave way. Ahead, fast vanishing into a misty cloud,

the gryphon beat wide-stretching wings.

Kerovan stood, his face dull and lifeless, showing, I believed, the countenance

of some man caught in a sorcerous dream. I knew I could not reach him, that if I

screamed aloud, even beat upon his body, he would not hear or feel. He glanced

from side to side, and I sensed that what he saw was not altogether strange to

him. Now he strode on, following the gryphon, at the fast pace of one obeying a

summons. I would not be left behind so I broke into a short run to keep up with

him.

From time to time (I was afraid to take my eyes long from Kerovan lest he vanish

in some way peculiar to this otherwhere place) I glanced around. There was light, though it came from neither torch nor lamp. We traveled down a long aisle

between huge pillars, so large I do not think that two men standing, holding their arms full length, could have touched fingers about that girth.

Those pillars were carved with lines of a long-forgotten tongue— it the language

had ever been known in my own world (which I doubted). There was a cloud of mist

hanging above us that drifted—as real clouds might—while ahead shone a core of

stronger light, which I believed was Kerovan's goal.

He moved ever faster, until at last he ran. Gasping, I tried to keep up with him, but that fatigue with which I had awakened, the draining of the globe, slowed me. A sharp pain struck beneath my ribs, making me gasp and slow even more.

I was afraid. If Kerovan got beyond my sight I might lose him forever. Still there was no way I could break the spell that held him, of that I was sure.

On and on—that brighter light grew larger. I could see more details of the pillar carvings. Not that they meant anything, save that the message they must

record was of greater import than I could know or guess. The Waste was a place

of wonders, both of good and evil. Here, I knew, was a place of great Power—yet

I could sense neither evil nor good. Was there a third way, neither of the Light

nor Dark, that had laws of its own?

Then came a sound rising above the clatter of our boots, a crooning, a singing.

From deep notes, which were akin to the rumble of drums, the song rose to the freedom of trumpets proclaiming victory—only to fall again.

The light flared brighter still. Had it risen so in answer to that song? I saw,

in the heart of it, a dais from which a point projected in the direction from which we had come. On that platform rested a long case of some transparent substance. At the head of that the gryphon reared, its bird foreclaws resting upon the case, its beast hind paws firm set on the dais. The wings of silver white fanned the air gently, while from its beak issued that song.

Kerovan halted at the foot of the dais, stood swaying. One hand rose to his head

as if he were so mazed he did not know where he was or what he did. The gryphon

did not turn those glowing eyes on either of us. It held its own head high, still giving voice. I thought I heard a pleading note growing stronger in that

song.

Slowly Kerovan stepped upon the dais, fell rather than leaned forward, so that

both his outflung arms rested across the case as he knelt there, his head drooping between his arms. He remained as if he had come to the end of all striving, could make no further effort. The gryphon bent its crested head in turn, its cruelly pointed beak aimed—

I tried to cry out a warning, but there was a barrier in my throat, a sealing on

my lips. Using my will as a lash upon my falling body, I staggered on toward Kerovan. If he could not defend himself against that rapacious beak, perhaps there was something I could do. Englobed, the gryphon had served me. Free…? I did not know—I could only hope.

Before I reached my lord's side I saw that it was not at his head or shoulders

that beak was aimed. The winged creature now pecked determinedly at the covering

of the box. As I came to lay hands on my lord, attempting to draw him out of danger, I saw what lay within and it froze me for a long moment.

Man? No! Monster? Again no. There was nothing evil about that sleeper, strangely

shaped though his body might be. Here was the gryphon fused with what was partly

man. But this encoffined one was far greater than both in his own way—yes, I knew that also.

I found myself on my knees. My hold on Kerovan's shoulders tightened so I was able to draw him a little toward me, away from where that great beak strove to

break the surface of the sleeper's coffin. Thus we were clinging together when

there was a crackle—lines of splintered transparency ran swiftly outward, even

as earlier the globe had broken in my hands.

My lord tried to rise, half fell back against me, so I steadied him once more against my own body. Our eyes were not for each other now, rather for what was

happening to the case. Those cracks grew wider. Fragments flew outward as the gryphon, seemingly heartened by its success, struck faster and deeper.

Then all the substance of that encoffming fell away, became powdery dust.

Once

more the gryphon reared above the sleeper and opened its beak. Only this time it

did not sing, instead it gave a shout, perhaps an alarm.

The eyes of the sleeper opened. They shone red, as fiery as those of the bird-beast towering above. One hand was lifted from its grasp on a sword still

resting on the stranger's breast. The beast bent its crested head and I saw the

man's fingers move in a caress, scratching among the feathers as one gentles a

favorite hound.

Now he, who had been so freed and awakened, looked around at my lord. After a long moment his eyes met mine in turn. There was awesome wisdom in those eyes,

other emotions I did not know nor could I name—which no one of human birth might

understand. I could not turn away, though I winced, for it seemed that this other invaded my mind, learned more from that single glance than any of my own

kind could in a full lifetime.

Then he turned again to Kerovan as he drew himself up, the sword loosely held in

one hand, the other arms resting across the gryphon's neck as the creature squatted closer, offering to lend him its support. With that wicked-looking beak

it was smoothing its master's own feather-crested head.

There was no change in the blankness of Kerovan's expression, no sign of the fear and awe that were mingled in me. The gryphon-man leaned forward, laid the

sword aside, set his hand, which was more like the taloned foot of a bird, under

my lord's chin, raising his head, to peer more intently into those blind eyes.

Fear overcame awe in me. As I had earlier sought to protect Kerovan from the beak of the gryphon, so now did I fling out a hand to strike at that hold.

Once

more those fiery eyes swung on me. I sensed a feeling of surprise, a questioning—then again that mind invasion which I could not understand.

He reached back and picked up the sword with his other hand, to use it, as a Wisewoman uses her wand, drawing lazy smoke curls in the air. I was forced to my

feet, pushed back. The gryphon uttered another sharp cry, bobbed its head in my

direction. Its newly awakened master lowered the blade to point at my breast.

There came a weight, a force I could not withstand, urging me away from the dais, putting me against the nearest pillar. Then the sword point shifted, but I

discovered that I could not move so much as a finger. The gryphon-man, having so

disposed of me, gave Kerovan once more his full attention.

He stretched even as might a human awakening from a deep sleep. Though he wore

no clothing his silver-white body was robed with power which flooded about him.

I felt that I might easily become what Kerovan now appeared to be—a mindless servant.

Though I sensed no evil, I knew a growing anger that my lord had been so reduced

to another's will—be that one of the great Old Ones or not. So I struggled within for my freedom—or if not, to project to Kerovan the knowledge that he was

the equal of any—should he choose to be. My dear Lord Amber should not bow or serve…

The gryphon-man leaped lightly from the dais and approached me. If there was an

expression on his alien face the strangeness of his features hid it from me.

There shot into my mind, burning enough that I might have cried out with the pain, speech—so strong that it was a shout in my head.

"Why do you fear for him so? Do blood-kin war?"

This was far more powerful mind-talk than the cats had used but having met with

that I was ready.

"What have you done to him then? And who are you?" Old One or not, I would grant

no courtesy as long as I saw Kerovan so.

"I do nothing with him, save lead him to his true heritage."

The gryphon roared—such a sound as I would not have believed could rip from that

bird beak. It reared on its hind paws, presented its talons as it might for defense. The beast was facing away from us, staring down an aisle beyond.

Its master whirled about, leaped back and caught at the sword. He gestured.

Kerovan moved toward me, still as one who walks in sleep. Then the Old One joined us as the gryphon took wing, flew in the direction it had been watching.

The gryphon-man's arm moved like a flash of light through the air. With the point of the sword he drew a circle around the three of us—for I had found I could move forward again, in fact I was urged so. The circle glowed, flaring up

from it a radiance through which we could see, yet it sent streamers far above

our heads.

From the direction the gryphon had taken there appeared a whirl of dark shadow—advancing jerkily, as if it found difficulty in its path. It puffed forward, retreated, and then puffed again. Though we could no longer see the beast, which had gone to confront it, we could hear its continued roars of challenge.

I clutched at Kerovan. Under my feet the floor shifted. Near the shadow the pavement buckled upward, to let a black stream spew outward. The gryphon-man set

his sword between his knees; both of his hands moved in a series of signs.

Around us the haze wall thickened and blazed at the same time. Kerovan's arms came about me, his face was alive again.

There followed the sensation of being lifted by a whirlwind. I dared not look down lest I see nothing below. We were sealed in by the light, and now the gryphon-man laid one taloned hand on Kerovan's shoulder, the other on mine.

That light touch brought warmth, drove out my fear. No matter, however, if this

stranger so sought to comfort me, what counted most was that my lord held me in

his arms.

The streams of light whirled enough to make me giddy. I closed my eyes, but the

sensation of flying was not lost. I no longer heard the gryphon's roars. Had the

creature been overwhelmed? I hoped passionately that was not so.

"Telpher is in no danger."

The stranger had reassured me then. Who was he? Then— we swooped downward with

such speed that I held even more tightly to my lord, felt his grasp also stiffen.

Fresh air… I opened my eyes. We stood in sunlight. Here were flowers—a feeling

we had returned to our own time and world. Again came a trumpet call as a winged

body passed over us. The gryphon flew to perch above the wide arch of a gate.

Though we stood in the open there were still four walls boxing us about. Each was pierced by a wide arched gate, three of which showed hard usage from time by

fallen stone, but the fourth, where the gryphon had landed, was intact.

Rowers

grew in drifts of soil that spread in from the ruined gateways. There was even a

tree or two that had taken root here.

The gryphon-man stood a little apart from us now. Even in the full light of the

sun there remained that glow clothing him. He turned slowly, facing each of those doorways in turn. I do not think he meant us to hear him, but perhaps his

earlier invasions of our minds may have linked us, for I caught thoughts carrying overtones of grief.

"Matr, Yoer, Rllene! Has it then been so long, and you gone so far?"

To each door he made a small gesture of the head as one uses in bidding farewell

to a companion-friend. It was only then that he turned his attention once more

to the two of us.

"We have but little time. If Galkur dared to invade the hall, he will follow swiftly…"He once more studied Kerovan with the same searching intensity he had

used before. This time my lord, now awake, looked as straightly back.

"Yes," the Old One continued. "I can well understand now what moves Galkur.

Only

his power appears somewhat lessened, perhaps by time. Now…!"

He flung up his head and, from his beaklike mouth, there sounded a roar not unlike that which the gryphon had uttered before it flew into the dark. The sound was oddly magnified; it filled, I thought, both heaven and earth. There was an answer.

A man who appeared as human as a Dalesman walked toward us under the arch where

the gryphon crouched. His gray clothing was that of any wandering merchant.

Only

I knew him and spoke his name—with relief.

"Neevor!"

His answering smile was as kindly as that of my uncle when, as a small child, I

had sought him out over some matter of unhappiness or doubt. A human smile, surely, and a warm one. From him flowed reassurance like a warm cloak placed about my shoulders in the chill of winter.

My naming of him came only moments before my lord did likewise. Kerovan took a

step away from me. I believe that at that moment he reached for the same assurance that had comforted me.

"So—Neevor—your hand is in this matter also?" The gryphon lord thought-spoke.

"Was it not from the beginning, Landisl? I come now to take my part in the ending. When Galkur made mischief did not the dream of it enter your slumber?

He

thought then to shape a man-tool"—Neevor nodded toward Kerovan—"to his patterning and his purpose, taking advantage of a fool. But then, whose power essence interfered? Now what have you to say concerning the result of your dreaming, Landisl?"

The gryphon-man's beak-mouth opened on a sound that was not human laughter but

carried the same note.

"Yes, it was I who spoiled Galkur's plot—even in my sleep. As to this one"—talons touched Kerovan's shoulder gently, then gripped tight—"I have yet to

prove him. You know the Law, Neevor—the future depends upon—"

Neevor interrupted him. "Just now it may depend upon Galkur. And you stand alone

of the Sky-Ones. It took four of you to defeat him once."

Landisl's eyes glittered like sun-touched rubies. "Some powers wax with time, some wane. I believe that Galkur has lost somewhat. Or surely he would not have

played games with the aid of a self-taught fool of a sorceress to foster a plot

so easily overturned. What are his new plans, Neevor? It was your choice I spend

years wandering, what have you learned during that restless travel to and fro?"

"Never to underestimate such as Galkur. His game has new elements, Landisl.

There is a race of flawed and evil men overseas who entered this world through

one of the gates. They are of the Dark, doubly so, though their learning is of

another kind that does not answer to our Law. Therefore it is twice dangerous.

They are embattled now and they need a new force for aid.

"Through their own ways of detection—and some reaching out on Galkur's part—they

have learned of Arvon and what may be tapped here. Though their conception of Power is distorted, and they do not understand our usage, they come seeking.

They sent war into the Dales, endeavoring so to clear a path to us. And they are

of a kind who can always provide a rallying point for many who have nourished the Dark here.

"Galkur ponders now on giving them more aid. So many of our Great Ones have gone, seeking gates of their own—new worlds beyond. Of those who remain, very few are full adepts— only a handful as learned as Galkur. So…"

"So you use your spells to send these two to awaken me?"

"Send, no. It is by your doing that even one stands here, that you have already

acknowledged." He nodded toward Kerovan. "It is by their own will and courage that they have won here." There was a sharpness in that. "Those qualities they

have in plenty. Kerovan's birthright none may take from him. Daughter" —now he

looked directly at me, once more smiled with such sweet gentleness that I longed

to throw myself into his arms—"I told you once that you had a Key—to be used in

the right time and place. You have done well with it. Now it remains for us to

do as well with what will follow."

Above the arch the gryphon roared.

Neevor half turned to look behind him through the gate.

"It seems that our time for doing so is now," he observed.

Kerovan

ONCE I HAD PACED A CERTAIN HALL IN A DREAM. THEN I DID IT waking—or was all a dream? What is illusion and what is truth when the Old Ones choose to weave patterns beyond the understanding of men? Was I more than one of strange blood?

What part weighs in me the strongest?

This time I watched the sleeper wake; then came the first trial of strength between old, long-opposed Powers. Now we stood again in the world that the human

half of me knew and welcomed. Struggle lay before us, though four was now five—a

small army indeed. This would be such a battle as once before I had known when,

to save my dear lady, I went up against the Dark.

There was a reason, going back to my birth—or before that even—which bound me to

this course, and, through it, bound Joisan. Perhaps I was even first fashioned

to play a part here— but that was not so for my lady.

Had I been able at that moment I would have caught her up, hurled her from us into safety. As I gazed at her that part of the inner self, which I had kept under such tight restraint and tried to banish, awakened as had the sleeper.

I

knew then, for all my tears, I could never set her apart. We were indeed bound

together tor good or ill.

Not because we had once been used by our elders to insure an alliance of the Dales. There was something far stronger to unite us. Her eyes met mine with level courage. The spirit that burned in her fought that cold within me, warming

my best part back to life. I lost the icy touch forever.

My sword sheath hung empty. I had no bow, not even a knife. Also I believed that

what we awaited could not be harmed by any weapon forged by men. Neevor carried

only a staff of rough wood such as might be cut from any sapling, bits of bark

still clinging to it. The sleeper—he held a sword, yes, but in some way I dimly

understood it was not made for thrust or parry, cut and slash, in crude open warfare. The gryphon on the gate perch moved a fraction, its beak a little open

so its serpent tongue lolled out, its wings slowly fanned the air.

I do not know why or how at that moment my hand sought my belt pouch—my left hand. Fingers fumbled with the clasp and then groped within. What I drew forth

was that bit of blue metal I had found in the noisome nest of the Waste.

It was a broken piece of metal, about which my fingers now curled tight—surely

of no use in any battle. But, weaponless as I was, I stood shoulder to shoulder

with Joisan. I saw her fingers go to her breast, fall away empty, as she remembered the globe was now gone.

A tongue of thick dark such as we had seen in the aisle of the sleeper's hall burst from out the ground just beyond the gate. The very earth might be vomiting

forth evil it could not stomach. This was an offense against the light of day,

the air, the place where we stood.

Once more the gryphon roared a challenge. This time, however, it did not fly forth to meet what came. I looked to Neevor, to Landisl. Neither showed any surprise, certainly no hint of dismay. Still I sensed in them a wariness, in spite of their outward appearance of ease.

Joisan's hand sought mine. She closed her fingers slowly as if she half expected

I would shake off her touch. The warmth of her flesh against mine was what I needed most—again she was giving fully, openly, all I lacked.

Echoes of the gryphon's roar died slowly. Beyond the gate the black mass whirled, grew smaller, thicker, more solid. In an eye's blink there was no dark—only a man. Or… could one name him man?

He was tall and, like Landisl, bare of body. To the waist he •-•-as well proportioned, fully human-seeming. His head was crested with a thick growth of

curling dark hair and his face sternly handsome. Those features might have formed the countenance of some ancient hero-king.

Only—that half-heroic body with its noble head, was belied by what lay below.

From the waist down he was clothed by a wiry pelt much coarser than any hair or

fur, and his thick legs ended in—

I glanced quickly away. Hooves! Hyron had suggested that I seek kin. Was this one of my own blood—the other half of me?

The mixture of noble and worse than bestial which he presented raised in me such

a feeling of loathing as made me want to kill him. Or else run to hide myself from the eyes of those among whom I stood because I carried that same stamp upon

my own body. There awoke in me once more that cold loneliness with which I had

lived for so long. I shared blood with… Perhaps this beast-man could even claim

my kin allegiance.

"No!"

It was not I who cried that denial aloud, nor had it come from cither Neevor or

Landisl. Joisan! She did not eye that monster, coming ever nearer the gryphon-shrouded gate, her eyes were for me, demandingly, even as her hold on me

tightened.

"No—you are no part of him!" I saw her lips shape the words, but I heard them in

my mind. That thought-send was rich, filled with what was needed to soothe the

bleakness about my heart.

"A new day; another meeting…" Galkur (if this was Ualkur) broke through that short moment of oneness with my lady. His voice was also deep, rich, and was meant, I thought, to he beguiling. He spoke aloud, not using the mind-speech.

Neither Neevor nor Landisl replied. The half-man smiled. This was a smile which,

if one did not look below the face, might have charmed even a prudent doubter.

Did I stir then, or had he already considered that there might be some cord between us which he could draw upon?

"You stand in strange company, my son." He used the last two words with deliberation, emphasizing them.

His stamp was on my body, perhaps had always been my bane. I carried a taint of

the Dark—was such truth coming to light at long last? My self-doubts returned in

hard array.

Neevor raised his staff. The rod of wood made a barrier before me. I strove to

shake free of Joisan's hold. This was the truth! I was kin-bound to the Dark.

Could they not see it? My mother's ambition, the will of this Dark Lord, had made me tainted stock. If I remained with them I would bring down in defeat those about me. As an unwilling enemy in their midst, I would be a key by which

he could enter their stronghold.

"Only if you believe—accept—the lie. The choice lies with you, Kerovan."

Joisan! She would not release my hand, holding it and me prisoner as she cupped

it against her breast, even as I had so many times seen her cup the gryphon.

"Keep your lady, if you so desire, my son." Again that warm enticing smile.

"Who

wishes to part devoted lovers?"

Mockery in that. My other hand clenched. But, may all Powers forgive me, a part

of me answered to him. What did I want with this girl out of the Dales, I, who

could summon, could have, any female I wished?

Pictures trailed languishingly through my mind, clear, detailed. I was reduced

to a slavering dog trailing a bitch in heat. This was foul, and I was invited to

wallow in the filth. Joisan was no part of me.

I tore my hand free with strength enough to send her staggering backward.

Inwardly I faced that seeping foulness, which spread until I longed to sear the

flesh from my bones to rid myself of such stinking evil.

"Come." He beckoned to me. The sorcery he put into that single word set my whole

body trembling. Where else could such as I go? It was only fit that kin should

go to kin…

I bit my lower lip, reeling no pain, though my own blood dribbled down my chin,

clenched both fists. I was a part of this monster, so I must withdraw from those

who were clean in body and mind.

"Kerovan!"

I shook my head—I must withdraw from her most of all. I was of the Dark—evil and

foul. These others had tried to save me—or they had deceived and used me for some purpose of their own. They could keep me no longer.

Joisan had fallen to her knees, I stooped and tore from her belt the knife I had

given her. Good clean steel, very sharp, ready for what I must do. I could not

attack that thing waiting out there— calling me so. But I could do the next best

thing—remove his key, make sure I could not be a traitor!

My hand moved with the practiced ease I had learned long ago us a boy sweating

under the tutelage of a master fighting man. The sharp edge neared my throat.

Fire blazed, burned at the wrist of my knife hand—thrust up into my eyes. My arm

fell as if dragged back by a great weight. Fire burned in my other hand—the pain

reaching deep into me. Only there it found nothing to feed upon—to slay…

I looked down dazedly at my hands. The blade lay on the pavement at my feet, but

the fire still ran about my wrist, shown between the fingers that grasped that

metal fragment from the nest.

"Kerovan!" Joisan once more flung herself at me, catching that weighted arm as

if she feared I might again raise it. There followed swift on her cry a thought.

"Only those of the Light can hold or wear quan-iron, boy. Trust yourself first."

Landisl? Yes! I was not, I could never be kin to Galkur. I thought his name with

the same savagery that I would have shouted a battle slogan. I was drained, weak, but afire now with anger. My fate lay in my own two hands. I had just had

material proof of that. Had any here the right to decide for me what my future

would be? I had walked, ridden, slept and awakened again, for so long seeking the truth. Now I knew it.

Save that this was not the matter of my own awakening; it was a matter of the age-old confrontation of Light with Dark—in which I bore only a part, perhaps a

small part. I stared at that beast-man. Though he still smiled, the deep warmth

had vanished— in its place was a sly contempt.

Anger burned higher in me. I had no Power as these reckoned it. My anger was of

human kind. Perhaps the Old Ones could play upon the inner core of a man, shaping him for their use. But there comes a time when even a slave may break for freedom.

Though I wore the mark of the Dark One—he did not possess me. Nor was I of the

Light. I was myself.

Will—will is the core of some kinds of Power. I had wrought with my will before.

Slowly I fought that weakness in me, raised my left hand. Remember, I told myself fiercely, what Landisl reminded you of—the wristlet, the broken piece of

metal. They were of the Light, as you always guessed. You are Kerovan. It does

not matter whose seed, whose sorcery, brought your life, in whose womb you grew—you are you alone. What you make of life lies within you.

Silence held us. Joisan stood with her arms crossed on her breast watching me now, as if what she saw was not one she Knew, but neither was he a monster. I was me. I was not to be pushed, used, possessed. I was free to make such choices

as I deemed best, and from this moment I had no past, nor kin, only myself—and

Joisan! Always Joisan!

We were allied, I had chosen to be allied—Neevor, Landisl, the gryphon, Joisan,

and I.

"Galkur…" I found satisfaction in naming the enemy. Meager as any strength of mine might be, I needed that fraction of support that his naming might bring; thus I called his name aloud.

There was no smile on his face now. The shadow of nobility that had masked it vanished. These were the features of one of the Dark Ones swollen with awful pride.

"Son…" he returned. His voice was still honeyed, but he leered crookedly.

"No son of yours!" I returned, welcoming the heat of metal about my wrist, balanced by that piece near-piercing my other palm.

"You bear my seal." He gestured to my hooves.

"A man may have yellow hair and still not be Sulcar." I did not know from whence

came that ease of speech.

"My son—come to me!"

He snapped that as an order. A stir toward him answered in me, faint now, was still in me. I clenched my left hand tighter about the fire I held. I was Kerovan!

His hand came up to draw symbols in the air. I watched them form like smears of

greasy oil dribbled across cleanliness, fouling the sunlight.

Again the tug within me—stronger. I planted my hooves, stood straight. I was Kerovan.

"I am no running hound for you, Galkur." I did not raise my voice, rather used

it as if I spoke of unimportant things. "You needed a servant, you strove to fashion one. But you have neither son nor servant."

His face grew hard, cold, with very little of the human remaining in it.

"Hound you are, slave you are, mine you are."

I heard then a harsh crow, not human laughter, but carrying with it the ghost of

that.

"Galkur, when will you admit that your sorcery failed? Surely you must have known that from its very inception. You did not used to be a fool."

The cold mask tore; underneath was seething hate.

"What matter is this of yours?" he spat at Landisl. "There are Laws—"

"Laws? Do you take refuge in such now? Did you believe you would weave with Power and I would not know it, even though I lay in the Long Rest, and you thought me safely caged so? You sought out the Lord of Ulmsdale even as his lady

desired—you strove to fill him with your inner force—then… Tell me now, Galkur,

what did happen. What really happened?"

The Dark One turned his head from side to side, his face was that of a demon out

of a night's worst dream.

"Look at his body! He bears my mark upon him for all men to sec. You cannot deny

that. I shall yet prove him mine!"

His eyes caught my gaze—held. They grew larger, were pits of fire, dark depths

preparing to swallow me. All else vanished, narrowed to those waiting pits. I would be swallowed…

I was Kerovan! I was myself. That fire, the dark, the stench was not mine.

Belief in myself was my shield. I was no Dark One's spawn.

"Do you still claim him, Galkur?"

Beyond the fire pits the voice rang clear.

"Do I, or Neevor, lend him aid now to stand against you? He Fights his own battle because he is what he himself has made— and that is not one of your line.

Indeed his birth came not from your desires—nor from his mother's wish—though that set upon his body your mark because she wanted a claim upon you. But in the

very moment of his birth she knew she had failed! My doing, Galkur—mine!"

"You could not—" The fire pits shrank, flames no longer sought to lick me down.

They were only eyes in a beastly face. "You could not—under the Law—"

"That Law you broke, Galkur, when you so meddled. And, in the breaking released

me. He is line's true son—in part—a fraction of his mother's… but there is something more. In time he shall choose, if he will, another path. Do not seek

to hide behind the Law now. Face us all!"

Energy poured out of me, fusing with other sources of Power— that from Landisi,

from Neevor, whose staff once more rested point down—yes, and from Joisan.

The

gryphon voiced its roar. Joisan's face grew pale and strained. I wanted to hold

her close—but this was a time when all our strength must be turned elsewhere.

Forms congealed in the air behind Galkur, ready to feed into him energy in the

same way we combined our own forces. There were horrors among them from which any sane man must avert his gaze, others which might have passed for Dalesmen and women. I half expected to see Temphera among them.

The drain of energy became stronger. Above my head a snake of flame lashed, would have sunk its fangs into my eyes. I was Kerovan—these were illusions of the enemy. He had failed to entice me—he would fail again. Neevor's staff cracked, broke into two pieces. The jagged end of one flew into his face. It was

met by a band of blue flame. I had flung out my wrist without thinking, instinct

had willed that.

Joisan swung halfway around, fell to her knees, her arms flung up above her head

to ward off invisible blows. I saw blood start out on her cheek.

Rage, as fiery as those eyes had been, filled me. I turned my wrist; a blue beam

shot toward Galkur. One of his misshapen followers darted between, exploded, leaving behind only a stench.

At last the gryphon took wing, planed down from its arch perch to stand over Joisan's body where she had sunk, face down, on the pavement. It covered her, its beak open in an enraged hiss. The broken ends of Neevor's staff took on life, rising, darting through the gate at the Dark forces. They did not touch the Dark Lord, but they struck like well-aimed spears at the figures capering about him.

I moved forward, step by step, no longer trying to bring down Galkur himself, but aiming the ray at his band. Each one of those taken out of this struggle would drain him of strength.

The Dark Lord caught up one of his own monstrous servants, rolled the creature

into a ball that he hurled at me. Then behind that attack, he himself leaped forward.

There was another beside me as I swept that balled thing out of existence.

Landisl, his sword high, stood between me and the hoofed one.

Galkur skidded to a quick stop. His body began to swell. I saw some of his followers fade as he absorbed their substance. The bristly hair on his lower body fluffed, its ends giving off yellowish light.

Landisl's silver body shone as bright as the sword he now held with both hands.

Waves of force burst from its sky-pointing tip, rippled down the length of the

blade to encircle his body. He became a pillar of light.

The Dark Lord changed, also. Black flame burst from him, swirled and thickened

again into something giant high, which reached out a huge appendage to slap at

the burning torch Landisl had become—slap and flinch, without landing a blow.

For a long moment it seemed that both were so equally matched neither could move. The point of the white light fell forward as if it were a swift sword.

It

touched the swelling Dark. A black stain from that spread up the light, dimming

the glory of the white. I staggered as the pull upon my energy grew heavier.

Through a mist of weakness I saw Neevor hunch far over, his face as gray as his

clothing, his eyes closed. The gryphon and Joisan were now behind me; I felt their united energy pass me on its way to Landisl.

That stain spread no farther, the white held. Then there came a great upward flare of light, blinding me. Almost too late I flung my arm over my eyes. I fell

to my knees, sprawled forward— there was no strength left in me.

Joisan

I THOUGHT THAT NEVER AGAIN WOULD I SEE SUCH STRIFE AS THAT IN which my lord had

faced his own kin in the Waste on that other day of torment. But that was only a

skirmish with outlaws on a border raid compared to the battle with the Dark Lord

Galkur.

Though I did not even see the end clearly, my whole life force near drawn out of

me, I knew when it came for I had roused a little into a warmth. The gryphon crouched between me and all evil, curving its claws about my shoulders, holding

me to its breast, even as it had once rested against mine. I knew then such a feeling of peace and safety, in spite of my weakness, that I think I whimpered a

little, as might a child begging for comfort, finding it at long last.

I saw only a great upward surge of light and then it struck down upon the foul

darkness that threatened us. The black thinned, drew in upon itself. Once more

that white blade lifted— now it was like a great pointing finger. Down it jabbed

in turn.

A sound rent the air. It tore through my body, not my ears— that scream of defeat, of death and defiance still, mingled altogether. I slid then into shadows which welcomed me but were not of any evil sending.

"Joisan!"

There was no longer the softness of the gryphon's silvery mane against my cheek,

rather the hardness of mail. I opened my eyes and saw what I had longed for.

Perhaps all my life I had desired this without realizing what my full lack had

been until it was at last mine.

My dear lord—not looking down at me with his face closed, his lips straight, his

eyes hooded, so disciplined by his will that he could chill my heart. Rather this was my lord as I had always dreamed he could and would be some day.

I raised my hand, though that was difficult, for my own flesh was like a heavy

weight. Still I persevered until I could draw fingertips down his cheek, make sure by touch that this was he indeed, no illusion born out of my lonely longing. On my finger the gem from the past pulsed and grew redder as if it held

heart's blood full within it.

It was a lover's ring, I knew, and now it was a lamp leading me into another heart, wide open, ready to receive me.

"Kerovan…"

He had called my name loudly to summon me back to life. But I said his softly because it was so dear to me.

"It is done," he told me.

What was done—the battle? That no longer mattered. It lay in the past and the past no longer held us. It was what lay ahead that I yearned toward.

"So…"

Beyond Kerovan's shoulder I saw Neevor, the gray man. His face was thin, older.

When he spoke my lord looked up and around. For a moment I was afraid again, for

a shadow of his old stern self—the one I had fought against for so long—crossed

his face.

"It is done!" He said that to Neevor defiantly.

"The gryphon-man?" I tried to raise myself higher to look about. "My gryphon…?"

It was Neevor who answered, while my lord's arms were so tightly about me that

his mail bruised one. But I cherished that small pain because of its cause.

"They have completed their pattern," Neevor answered me.

I did not miss Landisl—he was so alien a being that he awoke in me only awe and

some fear. But my hand strayed to my breast where the gryphon had once hung, and

I remembered how it had come to shelter me during the last of that battle. I felt an emptiness of sadness and loss.

"Kerovan." Neevor again addressed my lord with a sharpness I had not heard from

him before. "Remember this, their plotting went awry. Though he tried to make you, Galkur had no part of it."

My lord smiled oddly. There was a ruefulness in his expression, yet such peace

as I had never seen in his face before.

"No hand in my making, only in my marring, is that what you wish to impress on

me, Lord? Well enough. And Landisl—what was he?"

The age I had seen in Neevor appeared to be fading.

"He had a part in you—so that in time you may—

"No!" my lord interrupted, shaking his head. "No, Neevor. I will follow no road

to the holding of Power—that one you would like for me to choose. I may have some small right to claim such, but I want not to be the master of any force.

I

am myself, Kerovan. I want nothing to make me more—or less."

"You agree, in truth." Neevor had been watching us born closely. He made a small

gesture with his hand as if he tossed something to the wind, to be borne away.

"This is then your free choice? There may never be another time to choose otherwise, you understand." The gray-clad man did not draw back, still suddenly

there seemed to be a growing distance between us.

"My choice is to be Kerovan, lord of nothing, man of no great talent," but my lord spoke more to me than to Neevor, as if it were very necessary that I understand. "I am only myself."

"Which is the one important thing," I found words easily. "You are my dear lord,

what else you desire shall come through your own efforts always. I think you are

to fashion a fine new fortune for us both."

Neevor laughed.

"Well done, children. Enter into the world of your choice. I foretell you shall

find it in no way lacking, and perhaps you shall encounter a surprise or two along the way."

Then, as one can puff out a candle flame, he was gone. I settled back into my lord's arms with a sigh of content.

"Our world." I caught his head and drew him down until our lips met with a warmth which became pure flame—to light us both—forever.


на главную | моя полка | | Gryphon in Glory |     цвет текста   цвет фона   размер шрифта   сохранить книгу

Текст книги загружен, загружаются изображения
Всего проголосовало: 4
Средний рейтинг 4.3 из 5



Оцените эту книгу